Selected quad for the lemma: father_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
father_n holy_a manner_n son_n 14,262 5 5.8799 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A05223 Dutifull and respective considerations vpon foure seuerall heads of proofe and triall in matters of religion Proposed by the high and mighty prince, Iames King of Great Britayne, France, and Ireland &c. in his late booke of premonition to all christian princes, for clearing his royall person from the imputation of heresy. By a late minister & preacher in England.; Dutifull and respective considerations upon foure severall heads of proofe and triall in matters of religion. Leech, Humphrey, 1571-1629.; Parsons, Robert, 1546-1610. aut 1609 (1609) STC 15362.5; ESTC S100271 179,103 260

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

creed_n for_o do_v not_o they_o both_o expound_v and_o unfold_v that_o high_a and_o obstruse_a mystery_n of_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n his_o identity_n and_o equality_n of_o substance_n power_n and_o glory_n with_o god_n his_o father_n witness_v those_o word_n add_v and_o use_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a about_o 310._o year_n after_o christ_n deum_fw-la venet._n de_fw-la deo_fw-la lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumine_fw-la deum_fw-la verum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la vero_fw-la genitum_fw-la non_fw-la factum_fw-la consubstantialem_fw-la patri_fw-la god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v be_v consubstantial_a to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n witness_v s._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n that_o be_v make_v by_o he_o in_o rome_n for_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n some_o 15._o year_n after_o that_o again_o wherein_o there_o be_v find_v that_o exact_a manner_n of_o speech_n distinguish_v the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n qualis_fw-la pater_fw-la talis_fw-la filius_fw-la talis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n such_o as_o the_o father_n be_v such_o be_v the_o son_n and_o such_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o he_o set_v down_o more_o particular_o the_o distinctive_a appellation_n and_o peculiar_a propriety_n belong_v unto_o every_o person_n as_o the_o father_n unbegotten_a the_o son_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v asmuch_o as_o if_o in_o plain_a term_n he_o have_v say_v the_o father_n distinguish_v with_o this_o personal_a propriety_n of_o beget_v a_o son_n be_v a_o father_n and_o no_o son_n the_o son_n distinguish_v with_o his_o personal_a propriety_n of_o be_v beget_v be_v a_o son_n and_o not_o a_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n distinguish_v by_o his_o personal_a propriety_n of_o proceed_v be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n &_o neither_o father_n nor_o son_n 14._o by_o all_o which_o we_o see_v the_o exceed_a great_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o determine_v these_o different_a manner_n of_o speech_n in_o disclose_v this_o ineffable_a and_o inutterable_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n which_o be_v not_o find_v at_o all_o totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la in_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o scripturian_n heretic_n for_o as_o learned_a hosius_n note_v and_o it_o be_v the_o observation_n of_o s._n ambrose_n against_o one_o only_a article_n of_o our_o saviour_n consubstantiality_n with_o his_o father_n they_o allege_v 50._o place_n of_o scripture_n i_o mean_v the_o arian_n who_o verbo_fw-la do_v bear_v great_a sway_n and_o insinuate_v themselves_o into_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o better_a support_v of_o their_o damnable_a heresy_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v creep_v into_o the_o favour_n of_o our_o king_n at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o uphould_v of_o their_o error_n and_o therefore_o great_a pity_n it_o be_v that_o the_o protestant_n and_o arian_n have_v not_o live_v in_o one_o age_n together_o that_o they_o may_v have_v join_v hand_n each_o one_o with_o another_o who_o do_v so_o near_o resemble_v each_o one_o the_o other_o in_o their_o behaviour_n and_o manner_n of_o proceed_v 15._o well_o then_o we_o see_v that_o the_o former_a mystery_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o trinity_n can_v be_v determine_v by_o no_o other_o power_n and_o authority_n upon_o earth_n then_o by_o that_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o express_a warrant_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v none_o in_o their_o pretence_n for_o many_o of_o these_o word_n that_o be_v now_o use_v and_o frequent_v by_o the_o church_n in_o the_o explication_n of_o these_o creed_n be_v not_o then_o in_o use_n but_o invent_v and_o apply_v afterwad_v by_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o present_a necessity_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o have_v they_o be_v so_o acknowledge_v and_o receive_v ever_o since_o by_o all_o christendom_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o behalf_n determine_v and_o expound_v have_v stand_v inviolable_a and_o such_o as_o have_v not_o admit_v the_o same_o have_v ever_o be_v repute_v and_o account_v for_o wicked_a and_o damn_a heretic_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v with_o attention_n as_o before_o i_o have_v partly_o touch_v in_o general_a that_o albeit_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a represent_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n of_o that_o age_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o make_v any_o new_a article_n of_o belief_n that_o be_v not_o true_a before_o but_o only_o do_v more_o full_o and_o plain_o explain_v and_o declare_v such_o thing_n as_o the_o impudence_n and_o importunity_n of_o heretic_n call_v into_o doubt_n and_o question_n so_o do_v not_o the_o say_a council_n explayne_v all_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o divine_a person_n for_o they_o leave_v at_o credo_fw-la in_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o there_o break_v of_o not_o unfould_v any_o thing_n particular_o controversy_n touch_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n about_o which_o there_o be_v afterward_o so_o great_a strife_n and_o contention_n and_o be_v to_o this_o day_n with_o the_o late_a obstinate_a greek_n affirm_v the_o same_o person_n to_o proceed_v only_o from_o the_o father_n &_o not_o from_o the_o son_n but_o leave_v that_o by_o god_n providence_n to_o be_v expound_v afterwards_o by_o other_o counsel_n when_o that_o point_n shall_v be_v call_v into_o question_n and_o so_o it_o be_v so_o that_o it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a unto_o every_o one_o that_o will_v not_o wilful_o shut_v his_o eye_n against_o the_o clear_a sun_n shine_v of_o truth_n that_o there_o be_v leave_v continual_a power_n in_o the_o church_n to_o explayne_v and_o determine_v with_o authority_n and_o that_o irrefragable_a and_o unresistable_a any_o doubt_n never_o so_o weighty_a about_o the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o any_o other_o article_n of_o belief_n or_o any_o other_o high_a point_n of_o divine_a mystery_n that_o shall_v arise_v among_o christian_n and_o that_o unto_o the_o world_n last_o end_n &_o every_o one_o under_o pain_n of_o damnable_a obedience_n against_o christ_n spouse_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o director_n thereof_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v and_o captivate_v his_o judgement_n and_o understand_v thereto_o and_o not_o to_o stand_v in_o contention_n against_o the_o same_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o these_o three_o creed_n in_o general_a how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reverence_v now_o let_v we_o descend_v unto_o the_o several_a article_n and_o position_n thereof_o in_o particular_a the_o second_o consideration_n now_o succeed_v our_o second_o consideration_n about_o the_o examine_n of_o certain_a particular_n of_o these_o three_o creed_n creed_n how_o they_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v you_o have_v hear_v before_o how_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v subscribe_v unto_o the_o same_o at_o their_o ordination_n now_o let_v we_o examine_v whether_o this_o english_a clergy_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o subscription_n thereunto_o do_v indeed_o true_o believe_v they_o and_o expound_v they_o in_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n interpretation_n and_o meaning_n as_o the_o general_n counsel_n and_o ancient_a father_n that_o collect_v they_o mean_v they_o as_o they_o do_v persuade_v his_o majesty_n they_o do_v a_o man_n will_v think_v that_o so_o solemn_a a_o oath_n take_v before_o a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o for_o preservation_n of_o religion_n and_o conseruaaion_n of_o the_o integrity_n of_o ancient_a faith_n lay_v down_o in_o ancient_a creed_n and_o general_a counsel_n shall_v religious_o bind_v before_o god_n and_o man_n people_n of_o their_o quality_n and_o condition_n but_o behold_v heresy_n that_o neither_o fear_v god_n nor_o revetence_v man_n observe_v no_o band_n at_o all_o but_o draw_v every_o thing_n to_o every_o man_n particular_a judgement_n and_o censure_v and_o therefore_o it_o do_v little_o avail_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o reverence_n and_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n whilst_o they_o reject_v the_o church_n sense_n and_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o same_o to_o swear_v unto_o they_o in_o word_n by_o subscription_n at_o their_o ordination_n but_o to_o forswear_v they_o in_o deed_n by_o a_o perverse_a and_o sinister_a interpretation_n and_o exposition_n and_o this_o god_n willing_a shall_v be_v make_v good_a against_o they_o in_o the_o subsequent_a consideration_n direct_v and_o address_v for_o this_o especial_a purpose_n 17._o first_o than_o it_o be_v set_v down_o and_o denounce_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o s._n athanasius_n read_v every_o sunday_n in_o the_o english_a church_n by_o order_n of_o the_o communion_n book_n that_o whosover_n entire_o do_v not_o believe_v whole_o and_o inviolable_o the_o catholic_a faith_n shall_v without_o doubt_n perish_v everlasting_o by_o which_o catholic_a faith_n he_o understand_v the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n and_o every_o article_n or_o
be_v certain_a word_n purposely_o devise_v and_o set_v down_o by_o the_o say_a council_n and_o they_o be_v these_o that_o follow_v deum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumine_fw-la deum_fw-la verum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la vero_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n true_a god_n of_o true_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v be_v of_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n by_o all_o which_o word_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o sacred_a council_n be_v not_o only_o to_o prove_v the_o creed_n equality_n of_o godhead_n betwixt_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n most_o blasphemous_o impugn_a and_o deny_v by_o the_o arian_n but_o further_n to_o illustrate_v the_o very_a identity_n of_o essence_n immediate_o sole_o &_o whole_o communicate_v from_o the_o father_n unto_o the_o son_n in_o his_o eternal_a generation_n and_o therefore_o do_v those_o thrice_o bless_a father_n call_v christ_n lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumine_fw-la to_o intimate_v thus_o much_o unto_o our_o understanding_n for_o the_o better_a comprehend_v of_o that_o mystery_n that_o as_o a_o light_n import_v his_o whole_a full_a and_o perfect_a light_n unto_o another_o and_o yet_o retain_v the_o whole_a in_o itself_o even_o so_o in_o that_o mystical_a and_o inscrutable_a generation_n of_o god_n the_o son_n beget_v of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o father_n as_o a_o light_n impart_v unto_o the_o son_n as_o a_o another_o light_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o distinctive_a personal_a substance_n his_o whole_a light_n that_o be_v his_o whole_a entire_a nature_n essence_n substance_n and_o godhead_n without_o section_n division_n motion_n mutation_n or_o alteration_n in_o the_o father_n according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n nazianzen_n prescribe_v against_o a_o certain_a curious_a heretic_n too_o busy_a in_o this_o point_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cast_v away_o thy_o fluxion_n thy_o division_n and_o section_n let_v the_o generation_n of_o god_n be_v reverence_v with_o silence_n and_o yet_o the_o father_n retain_v the_o whole_a in_o himself_o this_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o speech_n so_o material_o and_o methodical_o set_v down_o by_o this_o great_a council_n and_o that_o doubtless_o by_o the_o immediate_a instinct_n and_o apparent_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n against_o so_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o sacred_a person_n and_o divinity_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o gentilem_fw-la arian_n be_v m._n john_n calvin_n fall_v into_o the_o old_a vain_a of_o his_o arianize_a humour_n as_o doctor_n hunnius_n prove_v do_v utter_o mislike_v and_o condemn_v and_o presume_v to_o censure_v it_o thus_o impropriè_fw-la ac_fw-la durè_fw-la dictum_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la esse_fw-la deum_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumen_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o it_o be_v improper_o and_o hardly_o speak_v in_o the_o creed_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v consubstantial_a to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n affirm_v moreover_o christum_fw-la esse_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n of_o himself_o &_o not_o god_n of_o god_n the_o father_n but_o may_v not_o i_o say_v and_o have_v therein_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o bear_v i_o out_o catholicè_fw-la dictum_fw-la à_fw-la patribus_fw-la haereticè_fw-la mutatum_fw-la à_fw-la caluino_n that_o it_o be_v catholick_o speak_v by_o the_o father_n and_o heretical_o change_v by_o john_n calvin_n 25._o and_o though_o here_o his_o disciple_n will_v go_v about_o to_o free_v 19_o their_o master_n by_o urge_v cardinal_n bellarmine_n his_o defence_n for_o he_o in_o a_o certain_a place_n of_o his_o work_n wherein_o he_o excuse_v the_o say_a calvin_n in_o some_o part_n of_o his_o meaning_n and_o sense_n yet_o poor_a and_o miserable_a be_v the_o defence_n for_o that_o the_o cardinal_n express_o condemn_v the_o manner_n of_o calvin_n his_o speech_n as_o heretical_a heretical_a and_o intolerable_o proud_a and_o it_o be_v heretical_a say_v he_o quia_fw-la pugnat_fw-la cum_fw-la scripture_n because_o it_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n it_o be_v intolerable_o proud_a quia_fw-la pugnat_fw-la cum_fw-la concilijs_fw-la cum_fw-la patribus_fw-la it_o impugn_v general_a counsel_n and_o resist_v the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o all_o pious_a and_o religious_a antiquity_n thus_o the_o cardinal_n to_o who_o i_o remit_v the_o judicious_a reader_n for_o more_o ample_a and_o learned_a proof_n of_o the_o same_o the_o three_o consideration_n our_o three_o &_o last_o consideration_n of_o this_o present_a chapter_n us._n shall_v insist_v upon_o sundry_a article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n in_o particular_a wherein_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n that_o make_v a_o profession_n and_o that_o by_o subscription_n to_o admit_v the_o whole_a creed_n as_o it_o lie_v do_v notwithstanding_o differ_v from_o the_o sense_n interpretation_n and_o exposition_n of_o ancient_a church_n and_o to_o exemplify_v some_o particular_a article_n the_o five_o article_n be_v descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v understand_v literal_o as_o it_o lie_v for_o so_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v literal_o to_o be_v expound_v to_o wit_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o the_o consummation_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o passion_n leave_v his_o body_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n he_o descend_v victorious_o like_o a_o triumphant_a conqueror_n of_o death_n satan_n and_o all_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n with_o his_o soul_n into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n show_v and_o exhibit_v himself_o thereby_o a_o conqueror_n of_o death_n and_o deliver_v from_o thence_o diverse_a prisoner_n and_o namely_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n patriarch_n and_o prophet_n who_o ardent_o expect_v his_o come_n to_o open_a unto_o they_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o hymn_n of_o te_fw-la deum_fw-la which_o be_v in_o word_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n when_o thou_o have_v overcome_v the_o sharpness_n of_o death_n thou_o do_v open_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o all_o believer_n 27._o thus_o the_o ancient_a church_n understand_v this_o article_n as_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v by_o unamine_fw-la consent_n of_o all_o antiquity_n that_o expound_v it_o so_o for_o first_o the_o four_o council_n hell_n of_o toledo_n cap._n 1._o and_o the_o lateran_n gather_v under_o innocentius_n the_o three_o expound_v the_o article_n so_o as_o appear_z by_o their_o word_n plain_a to_o that_o purpose_n descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la ut_fw-la animas_fw-la quae_fw-la illic_fw-la tenebantur_fw-la erueret_fw-la christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n that_o he_o may_v deliver_v the_o soul_n which_o be_v detain_v there_o 28._o second_o thaddeus_n one_o of_o christ_n 70._o disciple_n who_o as_o he_o live_v in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o be_v it_o most_o like_a nay_o it_o can_v not_o be_v otherways_o but_o he_o know_v the_o apostolical_a sense_n of_o this_o article_n and_o yet_o he_o as_o eusebius_n record_v deliver_v the_o sense_n thus_o descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la &_o disrupit_fw-la maceriem_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o saeculo_fw-la nemo_fw-la disruperat_fw-la qui_fw-la descendit_fw-la quidem_fw-la solus_fw-la ascendit_fw-la autem_fw-la cum_fw-la grandi_fw-la multitudine_fw-la christ_n descend_v ult._n into_o hell_n &_o break_v down_o the_o partition-wall_n which_o no_o man_n have_v break_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n who_o indeed_o descend_v alone_o but_o ascend_v with_o a_o great_a multitude_n which_o be_v suppose_v then_o have_v you_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o of_o christ_n holy_a disciple_n and_o no_o doubt_n inspire_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o warrant_n of_o this_o doctrine_n 29._o with_o thaddaus_n agree_v ignatius_n another_o great_a saint_n and_o martyr_n that_o live_v immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v conversation_n with_o some_o of_o they_o descendit_fw-la solus_fw-la say_v trallian_n the_o same_o father_n ascendit_fw-la cum_fw-la grandi_fw-la multitudine_fw-la christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n alone_o but_o he_o ascend_v with_o a_o great_a multitude_n with_o these_o two_o so_o ancient_a so_o apostolical_a man_n accord_v justinus_n martyr_n a_o ancient_a and_o renown_a author_n in_o the_o self_n same_o age_n next_o after_o the_o apostle_n who_o in_o his_o conference_n or_o dispute_v cum_fw-la triphone_n judaeo_n for_o so_o be_v his_o dialogue_n entitle_v complain_v of_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o raze_v forth_o the_o testimony_n of_o hieremy_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o descend_v to_o hell_n ut_fw-la liberaret_fw-la mortuos_fw-la suos_fw-la that_o he_o may_v deliver_v his_o dead_a thence_o 30._o and_o now_o with_o these_o three_o do_v all_o antiquity_n consent_n to_o wit_n s._n irenaeus_n in_o his_o five_o book_n towards_o the_o end_n clemens_n lib._n 6._o stromatum_fw-la origen_n in_o his_o 15._o homily_n upon_o genesis_n his_o
salvation_n as_o s._n augustine_n that_o great_a pillar_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n note_v a_o sin_n the_o soul_n guilt_n ecclesiae_fw-la whereof_o nec_fw-la sanguine_fw-la abluitur_fw-la nec_fw-la passione_n purgatur_fw-la to_o close_v up_o the_o period_n with_o that_o renown_a martyr_n s._n cyprian_n his_o word_n 4._o the_o last_o but_o not_o the_o least_o nay_o the_o great_a cause_n of_o my_o comfort_n be_v when_o i_o real_o apprehend_v the_o candour_n serenity_n humility_n and_o sincerity_n of_o your_o noble_a hart_n in_o submit_v yourself_o by_o remit_v the_o trial_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o foresay_a imputation_n and_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n unto_o the_o sacred_a canon_n of_o holy_a writ_n common_a creed_n the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n and_o the_o bless_a father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n to_o all_o which_o upon_o a_o assure_a i_o may_v rather_o say_v a_o suppose_a innocency_n &_o integrity_n of_o your_o cause_n you_o appeal_v for_o the_o final_a umpiring_a and_o determine_v of_o any_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o catholic_n and_o your_o majesty_n which_o impartial_a and_o substantial_a ground_n as_o they_o be_v very_o prudent_o religious_o and_o with_o great_a maturity_n of_o judgement_n propose_v by_o your_o majesty_n according_a to_o the_o greatness_n and_o soundness_n of_o your_o judicious_a apprehension_n so_o if_o they_o shall_v stand_v inviolable_a and_o irrevocable_a like_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n &_o persian_n which_o can_v not_o be_v alter_v back_v by_o the_o word_n &_o authority_n of_o so_o potent_a a_o prince_n as_o your_o majesty_n be_v which_o may_v not_o be_v revoke_v for_o the_o word_n be_v go_v forth_o from_o the_o king_n you_o shall_v not_o only_o avert_v and_o avoid_v all_o sinister_a imputation_n and_o suspicion_n whatsoever_o from_o your_o royal_a person_n but_o withal_o you_o 17._o shall_v give_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n by_o public_a declaration_n of_o your_o majesty_n gracious_a disposition_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o if_o ought_v have_v be_v exorbitant_a extravagant_a or_o irregular_a in_o matter_n of_o your_o belief_n it_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v ascrybed_n to_o your_o violent_a education_n than_o anyway_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o your_o own_o voluntary_a obduration_n these_o thing_n be_v of_o wonderful_a comfort_n &_o exceed_a solace_n unto_o i_o 5._o but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o sweet_a repose_n whilst_o my_o weary_a and_o perplex_a thought_n seem_v to_o refresh_v themselves_o with_o some_o kind_n of_o promise_a hope_n upon_o the_o foresaid_a premise_n behold_v diverse_a other_o point_n of_o great_a anxiety_n &_o solicitude_n interpose_v themselves_o nay_o sudden_o interrupt_v my_o former_a solace_n i_o mean_v not_o general_o such_o point_n of_o your_o majesty_n book_n as_o may_v concern_v other_o christian_a prince_n people_n and_o state_n how_o these_o thing_n will_v be_v take_v among_o they_o for_o in_o this_o behalf_n i_o may_v not_o presume_v to_o prejudice_n your_o majesties_n grave_a wisdom_n and_o i_o can_v not_o but_o imagine_v but_o that_o your_o majesty_n out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o your_o own_o provident_a judgement_n have_v due_o and_o prudent_o preponderate_v all_o such_o probable_a ensue_a sequele_n and_o take_v far_o better_a counsel_n than_o i_o can_v be_v but_o such_o as_o particular_o respect_v and_o by_o necessary_a deduction_n of_o a_o certain_a inevitable_a consequence_n reflect_v proper_o upon_o myself_o for_o whereas_o i_o have_v with_o the_o great_a deliberation_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o imagine_v ground_v upon_o my_o own_o peculiar_a experience_n of_o many_o year_n travail_v in_o the_o sacred_a volume_n of_o orthodox_n antiquity_n make_v before_o a_o firm_a irrevokable_a resolution_n to_o abandon_v the_o protestant_a religion_n upon_o invincible_a argument_n of_o great_a solidity_n and_o notorious_a discovery_n of_o execrable_a blasphemy_n palpable_a and_o detestable_a heresy_n against_o god_n his_o christ_n his_o church_n his_o saint_n build_v my_o foundation_n upon_o the_o main_n rock_n of_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n canonical_a scripture_n true_o sense_v by_o they_o creed_n and_o counsel_n digest_v collect_v establish_v by_o they_o i_o now_o descry_v that_o your_o majesty_n intend_v to_o ground_v the_o clean_a contrary_a plea_n upon_o the_o same_o head_n for_o vindication_n of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n from_o the_o guilty_a crime_n of_o heresy_n the_o very_a intimation_n whereof_o inforce_v i_o i_o confess_v before_o the_o all-seeing_a judge_n and_o unto_o your_o sovereign_a majesty_n my_o supreme_a terrene_a lord_n next_o under_o he_o to_o look_v about_o i_o and_o to_o enter_v into_o a_o second_o and_o more_o serious_a consideration_n and_o meditation_n of_o the_o foresay_a head_n again_o lest_o i_o may_v happy_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o the_o great_a moment_n and_o weighty_a consequence_n in_o this_o world_n have_v run_v awry_o to_o the_o everlasting_a wrack_n and_o ruin_n of_o my_o soul_n 6._o now_o for_o aught_o that_o may_v concern_v your_o majesty_n royal_a person_n touch_v the_o imputation_n of_o heresy_n let_v that_o loud-crying_a sin_n of_o open_a rebellion_n against_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o heaven_n rather_o light_v upon_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n his_o christ_n his_o church_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o my_o sovereign_n then_o upon_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n who_o the_o god_n of_o angel_n make_v as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n to_o discern_v betwixt_o heretical_a novelty_n and_o catholic_a antiquity_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o find_v no_o difficulty_n nay_o i_o do_v with_o all_o alacrity_n and_o sincerity_n of_o soul_n admit_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o heretic_n and_o he_o that_o give_v credit_n unto_o heretic_n which_o s._n augustine_n admit_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o friend_n honoratus_n seduce_v by_o the_o donatist_n as_o your_o majesty_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v mislead_v by_o protestant_n it_o be_v in_o that_o excellent_a tract_n of_o his_o de_fw-la utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la write_v to_o his_o say_a friend_n si_fw-mi mihi_fw-la honorate_v unum_fw-la atque_fw-la idem_fw-la videretur_fw-la esse_fw-la haereticus_fw-la &_o credens_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la homo_fw-la tam_fw-la lingua_fw-la quam_fw-la stylo_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la causa_fw-la conquiescendum_fw-la esse_fw-la arbitrarer_fw-la etc._n etc._n cum_fw-la haec_fw-la ergo_fw-la ita_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la putavi_fw-la apud_fw-la te_fw-la silendum_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o i_o be_v persuade_v o_o honoratus_n that_o a_o heretic_n and_o the_o man_n who_o do_v believe_v heretic_n be_v all_o one_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n i_o shall_v suppose_v that_o i_o may_v spare_v both_o tongue_n and_o pen_n in_o this_o point_n but_o now_o since_o there_o be_v no_o small_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o two_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n in_o my_o judgement_n who_o for_o some_o temporal_a commodity_n and_o especial_o for_o renown_n and_o sovereignty_n either_o bring_v forth_o false_a and_o new_a opinion_n of_o himself_o or_o else_o adher_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v bring_v forth_o by_o other_o but_o he_o that_o give_v credulity_n to_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v delude_v with_o a_o certain_a imagination_n of_o verity_n and_o piety_n wherefore_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o i_o have_v think_v good_a not_o to_o be_v silent_a or_o to_o hold_v my_o peace_n with_o you_o what_o my_o judgement_n be_v concern_v the_o find_v out_o and_o retain_v of_o truth_n 7._o we_o then_o that_o be_v your_o majesties_n catholic_a subject_n dutiful_a in_o mind_n though_o different_a in_o judgement_n do_v out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o our_o most_o loyal_a affection_n and_o to_o mitigate_v matter_n what_o may_v be_v until_o almighty_a god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n shall_v vouchsafe_v to_o put_v further_a remedy_n in_o your_o understanding_n hart_n by_o a_o more_o clear_a reveal_n of_o his_o truth_n most_o cheerful_o and_o charitable_o fasten_v upon_o that_o pious_a religious_a &_o true_a distinction_n of_o s._n augustine_n not_o ascribe_v that_o hateful_a name_n of_o heretic_n unto_o your_o majesty_n howsoever_o you_o seem_v for_o the_o present_a to_o adhere_v and_o patronize_v such_o opinion_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o we_o upon_o contrary_a ground_n of_o catholic_a divinity_n do_v hold_v to_o be_v heresy_n but_o rather_o we_o esteem_v your_o majesty_n for_o a_o prince_n that_o from_o your_o nativity_n and_o tender_a infancy_n after_o the_o unfortunate_a loss_n of_o your_o thrice_o noble_a catholic_a mother_n have_v be_v misguide_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o such_o as_o have_v your_o noble_a person_n in_o their_o government_n who_o you_o have_v believe_v and_o consequent_o have_v be_v deceive_v imaginatione_fw-la quadam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la &_o pietatis_fw-la illusus_fw-la to_o end_v the_o sentence_n with_o s._n augustine_n his_o word_n 8._o and_o here_o in_o all_o dutiful_a submission_n as_o a_o true_a english-harted_n man_n and_o loyal_a subject_n to_o
aught_o effectual_o to_o move_v we_o to_o make_v great_a esteem_n of_o their_o knowledge_n to_o entertain_v they_o as_o we_o ought_v and_o that_o be_v high_o to_o reverence_v and_o sincere_o to_o affect_v the_o one_o since_o out_o of_o the_o confine_n of_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o salvation_n as_o also_o to_o detest_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o other_o as_o from_o a_o serpent_n yea_o as_o from_o satan_n that_o first_o seduce_v serpent_n since_o this_o bring_v with_o it_o assure_a damnation_n 15._o for_o these_o and_o the_o same_o cause_n the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o his_o catholic_n majesty_n as_o that_o he_o refer_v himself_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o their_o decision_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o these_o word_n and_o their_o mystery_n be_v reveal_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o in_o time_n they_o shall_v be_v bury_v in_o oblivion_n do_v present_o with_o their_o pen_n advance_v the_o most_o high_a commendation_n of_o the_o one_o as_o the_o only_a ordinary_a high_a way_n to_o everlasting_a salvation_n as_o also_o by_o many_o detestation_n and_o execration_n depress_v the_o other_o as_o the_o very_a path_n to_o eternal_a perdition_n 16._o among_o which_o worthy_n and_o famous_a pillar_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ancient_a father_n pacianus_n so_o high_o commend_v by_o s._n hier._n for_o his_o holiness_n above_o 1200._o year_n ago_o write_v a_o learned_a epistle_n to_o one_o sempronianus_fw-la a_o novatian_a heretic_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o name_n catholic_a for_o that_o illust_n those_o heretic_n as_o we_o also_o of_o this_o day_n do_v make_v very_o little_a account_n of_o this_o name_n but_o the_o holy_a father_n describe_v at_o large_a how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o leave_v unto_o we_o this_o name_n or_o rather_o syr-name_n for_o distinguish_v all_o faithful_a christian_n from_o misbeliever_n his_o word_n be_v very_o effectual_a for_o this_o purpose_n ego_fw-la sortè_fw-la ingressus_fw-la populosam_fw-la urbem_fw-la hodie_fw-la say_v he_o cum_fw-la marcionitas_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o bechance_v enter_v this_o day_n into_o a_o populous_a city_n and_o find_v there_o some_o call_v marcionite_n some_o apollinarian_o some_o cataphrigian_o some_o novatian_n and_o other_o of_o like_a sect_n all_o call_n themselves_o christian_n i_o do_v not_o know_v by_o what_o syr-name_n i_o shall_v find_v cut_v the_o congregation_n of_o my_o people_n except_o by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n so_o he_o and_o then_o proceed_v further_o certè_fw-la non_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la mutuat●m_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la sempr._n tantae_fw-la saecula_fw-la non_fw-la cecidit_fw-la certain_o this_o name_n be_v never_o take_v or_o borrow_v of_o man_n that_o have_v not_o fall_v or_o decay_v for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o then_o he_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n and_o universal_a church_n &_o namely_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_n in_o particular_a for_o the_o use_n of_o that_o name_n against_o all_o heresy_n whatsoever_o conclude_v thus_o quaere_fw-la ab_fw-la haeretico_fw-la nomine_fw-la noster_fw-la populus_fw-la hac_fw-la appellatione_fw-la dividitur_fw-la cum_fw-la catholicus_n nuncupatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n wherefore_o our_o people_n be_v distinguish_v by_o this_o appellation_n from_o all_o heretical_a name_n when_o it_o be_v call_v catholic_a and_o yet_o further_o he_o say_v christianus_n mihi_fw-la nomen_fw-la est_fw-la catholicus_n verò_fw-la cogneman_n i_o illud_fw-la nuncupat_fw-la istud_fw-la ostendit_fw-la hoc_fw-la prober_fw-la illo_fw-la significor_n christian_n be_v my_o name_n but_o catholic_a be_v my_o syrname_n the_o first_o do_v name_v i_o only_o the_o second_o do_v point_v i_o out_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a i_o be_o fignify_v only_o but_o by_o the_o syrname_n of_o catholic_a i_o be_o try_v and_o examine_v whether_o i_o be_v a_o christion_n or_o no._n so_o he_o 17._o this_o be_v that_o high_a account_n and_o esteem_v wherein_o that_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n s._n pacianus_n hold_v the_o word_n catholic_a after_o that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v appropriate_v &_o assume_v this_o distinctive_a appellation_n set_v it_o as_o a_o most_o certain_a badge_n or_o cognisance_n upon_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a and_o upon_o the_o sleeve_n of_o every_o member_n of_o this_o church_n in_o particular_a and_o the_o reason_n reassume_v in_o the_o conclusion_n be_v in_o effect_n this_o appellatio_fw-la catholici_fw-la congregat_fw-la homogenia_fw-la diss●pat_fw-la heterogenia_fw-la that_o be_v in_o plain_a term_n this_o name_n catholic_a make_v a_o conjunction_n unite_n her_o own_o and_o it_o note_v a_o disjunction_n separate_v all_o sectary_n from_o her_o society_n and_o here_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n even_o the_o wisdom_n of_o almighty_a god_n 19_o discern_v betwixt_o the_o true_a mother_n and_o the_o false_a this_o be_v the_o true_a &_o natural_a mother_n of_o every_o child_n of_o the_o church_n she_o will_v admit_v no_o division_n of_o her_o child_n she_o will_v have_v all_o or_o none_o for_o catholic_a be_v her_o name_n but_o to_o leave_v s._n pacianus_n and_o to_o pass_v to_o other_o since_o that_o the_o scripture_n require_v that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o 13._o thing_n shall_v be_v establish_v where_o we_o may_v note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o or_o three_o ordinary_a witness_n may_v stint_v the_o strife_n in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n and_o tend_v to_o reconciliation_n in_o foro_fw-la saeculi_fw-la how_o much_o more_o then_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o extraordinary_a witness_n witness_v judge_n and_o judge_a witness_n great_a than_o all_o exception_n aught_o to_o compromise_n and_o final_o decide_v the_o question_n now_o in_o hand_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la in_fw-la foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 18._o these_o witness_n consent_v with_o pacianus_n in_o the_o premise_a point_n of_o catholic_a be_v all_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o live_v either_o before_o or_o after_o he_o in_o the_o century_n of_o christian_a religion_n within_o the_o unity_n and_o bosom_n of_o their_o mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n as_o namely_o before_o he_o s._n cyprian_n who_o he_o express_o mention_v and_o before_o he_o again_o old_a tertullian_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n who_o s._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n so_o high_o reverence_v and_o when_o he_o will_v read_v he_o he_o 26._o point_v he_o out_o thus_o dam_fw-la mihi_fw-la magistrum_fw-la and_o after_o these_o two_o s._n augustine_n who_o ascribe_v so_o much_o and_o that_o as_o he_o think_v worthy_o unto_o this_o name_n catholic_a as_o that_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v one_o special_a motive_n both_o to_o draw_v he_o to_o it_o and_o to_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n of_o his_o day_n neither_o do_v this_o great_a doctor_n bare_o affirm_v it_o upon_o his_o word_n and_o credit_n which_o have_v be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o have_v believe_v the_o same_o but_o he_o yield_v a_o substantial_a reason_n thereof_o in_o the_o word_n follow_v quod_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la causa_fw-la inter_fw-la tam_fw-la varias_fw-la haereses_fw-la ista_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sola_fw-la obtinuit_fw-la which_o very_a name_n 4._o of_o catholic_a not_o without_o cause_n this_o only_a church_n have_v obtain_v among_o so_o many_o heresy_n as_o have_v spring_v up_o again_o the_o same_o father_n positive_o and_o bold_o affirm_v in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v so_o appropriate_a to_o this_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o creed_n give_v that_o name_n unto_o it_o as_o that_o no_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n whatsoever_o can_v once_o fasten_v upon_o the_o name_n themselves_o or_o procure_v the_o same_o to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o other_o and_o hereupon_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o very_a possession_n of_o the_o name_n and_o common_a opinion_n of_o man_n be_v a_o sufficient_a convince_a proof_n against_o all_o adversary_n that_o this_o church_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n indeed_o 19_o hitherto_o s._n augustine_n now_o if_o we_o descend_v low_a to_o succeed_v age_n of_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v unto_o those_o father_n that_o live_v after_o s._n augustine_n his_o time_n we_o shall_v find_v such_o harmony_n in_o unity_n such_o uniform_a consent_n in_o judgement_n touch_v the_o true_a explication_n of_o this_o name_n catholic_n as_o also_o the_o very_a right_a explication_n of_o that_o unto_o the_o visible_a universal_a church_n of_o their_o day_n that_o we_o must_v hence_o necessary_o infer_v that_o one_o spirit_n breathe_v in_o all_o one_o &_o the_o same_o spirit_n direct_v all_o and_o here_o i_o may_v produce_v a_o whole_a cloud_n of_o witness_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o namely_o s._n damascen_n oecumenius_n theophilact_n for_o the_o greek_a 1._o p●lgentius_n s._n gregory_n the_o
that_o to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v the_o catholic_n but_o pursue_v they_o and_o arrest_v they_o of_o sacrilegious_a church-theft_n for_o steal_v this_o title_n they_o dare_v not_o stand_v to_o try_v the_o issue_n before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n but_o present_o as_o guilty_a they_o fly_v away_o renounce_v their_o steal_a title_n and_o so_o it_o return_v to_o the_o right_a owner_n and_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n that_o maugre_o their_o head_n they_o be_v enforce_v to_o this_o restitution_n when_o they_o be_v at_o such_o opposition_n among_o themselves_o as_o be_v former_o note_v which_o very_a opposition_n itself_o set_v all_o other_o argument_n of_o the_o catholic_n a_o part_n do_v evident_o show_v and_o demonstrative_o convince_v unto_o their_o face_n that_o they_o can_v be_v catholic_n indeed_o because_o catholicum_fw-la ubique_fw-la unum_fw-la as_o the_o foresay_a father_n pacianus_n note_v that_o be_v catholic_a in_o christian_a religion_n which_o be_v eccles._n every_o where_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o for_o as_o christ_n seamelesse_a coat_n be_v whole_a entire_a and_o undevided_a it_o be_v s._n cyprian_n his_o comparison_n and_o it_o be_v well_o worthy_a our_o observation_n even_o so_o must_v the_o spouse_n and_o church_n of_o christ_n figure_v by_o this_o coat_n be_v whole_a entire_a undevided_a and_o one_o in_o itself_o and_o thereupon_o say_v s._n syprian_n possidere_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la indumentum_fw-la christi_fw-la qui_fw-la scindit_fw-la et_fw-la dividit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la christi_fw-la he_o can_v eccles._n never_o possess_v the_o coat_n of_o christ_n who_o rent_v and_o tear_v the_o church_n of_o christ._n 24._o but_o alas_o catholic_a communion_n and_o catholic_a union_n can_v be_v find_v much_o less_o verify_v in_o and_o of_o protestant_a religion_n not_o only_o in_o those_o old_a imagine_a time_n &_o age_n of_o their_o suppose_a primitive_a church_n which_o they_o ridiculous_o and_o impudent_o contra_fw-la scientiam_fw-la contrae_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la do_v challenge_n unto_o themselves_o but_o neither_o in_o these_o very_a age_n wherein_o they_o have_v peep_v out_o of_o chymerian_a nay_o out_o of_o infernal_a darkness_n and_o be_v know_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n lutheran_n caluinist_n and_o the_o like_a i_o say_v not_o in_o these_o time_n can_v they_o show_v ubique_fw-la unum_fw-la among_o themselves_o in_o main_n and_o many_o article_n of_o christian_a belief_n and_o this_o i_o can_v partly_o speak_v upon_o my_o own_o experience_n have_v among_o they_o for_o many_o year_n during_o which_o time_n i_o can_v never_o yet_o god_n i_o take_v to_o witness_v as_o righteous_a judge_n find_v any_o two_o of_o they_o agree_v together_o in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o partly_o i_o can_v prove_v it_o by_o infinite_a book_n write_v by_o themselves_o wherein_o they_o fall_v together_o by_o the_o ear_n discover_v their_o own_o shame_n upon_o their_o own_o skirt_n ephraim_n against_o manasses_n &_o manasses_n against_o ephraim_n &_o both_o against_o judah_n that_o be_v lutheran_n against_o caluinist_n &_o caluinist_n against_o lutheran_n &_o yet_o both_o like_o simeon_n &_o levi_n fratres_n in_o malo_fw-la in_o the_o evil_a of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n they_o can_v join_v hand_n and_o conspire_v against_o catholic_n and_o catholic_n verity_n and_o this_o convince_a my_o understanding_n that_o protestant_n can_v not_o be_v catholic_n and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v to_o the_o other_o side_n where_o i_o find_v indeed_o ubtque_fw-la unum_fw-la every_o where_o one_o in_o all_o point_n of_o their_o belief_n throughout_o the_o world_n together_o with_o that_o universality_n antiquity_n consent_n and_o succession_n which_o the_o foresay_a vincentius_n lyrinensis_n that_o good_a old_a monk_n &_o professor_n of_o euangelical_n counsel_n of_o perfection_n that_o live_v in_o s._n augustine_n his_o time_n set_v down_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n in_o his_o time_n as_o the_o certain_a sign_n mark_n and_o token_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n indeed_o and_o this_o much_o shall_v suffice_v for_o this_o first_o consideration_n about_o the_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n let_v we_o pass_v unto_o the_o second_o the_o second_o consideration_n if_o the_o change_n of_o abraham_n his_o name_n from_o abram_n into_o heretic_n abraham_n be_v full_a of_o mystical_a consolation_n because_o it_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o for_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n genes_n 17_o 5._o if_o jacob_n his_o name_n be_v turn_v into_o israel_n be_v fraught_v with_o comfort_n and_o that_o for_o these_o two_o especial_a reason_n first_o because_o he_o have_v prevail_v with_o god_n &_o second_o because_o he_o shall_v prevail_v against_o man_n genes_n 32._o 28._o o_o then_o how_o comfortable_a and_o how_o amiable_a how_o full_a of_o solace_n &_o heavenly_a delight_n ought_v this_o glorious_a &_o through_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n renown_a name_n of_o catholic_a to_o be_v unto_o we_o since_o it_o confirm_v we_o nay_o assure_v and_o seal_v unto_o we_o all_o god_n promise_n make_v unto_o the_o church_n it_o be_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n comprehend_v all_o true_a believe_a christian_n within_o the_o lap_n and_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n it_o prevail_v with_o god_n procure_v his_o heavenly_a benediction_n and_o never_o depart_v without_o a_o blessing_n and_o it_o prevail_v against_o man_n distinguish_v betwixt_o wolf_n and_o sheep_n separate_v all_o false_a worshipper_n from_o the_o true_a believer_n 26._o and_o now_o as_o this_o name_n of_o catholic_n begin_n to_o be_v unto_o i_o most_o amiable_a and_o comfortable_a contain_v in_o it_o so_o many_o privilege_n and_o prerogative_n and_o be_v so_o high_o repute_v esteem_v and_o commend_v by_o all_o sacred_a antiquity_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n day_n downward_o unto_o our_o time_n though_o sempronianus_fw-la the_o novatian_a heretic_n object_v to_o the_o forename_a father_n pacianus_n as_o the_o heretic_n do_v to_o we_o in_o these_o day_n that_o sub_fw-la apostois_n nemo_fw-la catholicus_n vocabatur_fw-la no_o man_n be_v call_v catholic_a under_o the_o apostle_n so_o on_o the_o 1._o other_o side_n compare_v contrary_n together_o quae_fw-la iuxta_fw-la seinuicem_fw-la posita_fw-la magis_fw-la illucescunt_fw-la which_o be_v opposite_a be_v the_o clear_a reveal_v i_o consider_v with_o all_o possible_a attention_n that_o the_o name_n of_o heretic_n be_v most_o dreadful_a above_o all_o other_o name_n upon_o the_o earth_n as_o before_o i_o have_v note_v at_o large_a and_o therefore_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o cham_n accurse_v of_o his_o father_n as_o you_o shall_v read_v there_o be_v genes_n 9_o 25._o then_o the_o heretic_n be_v this_o cham_n accurse_v of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o anathematise_v of_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n this_o be_v benoni_n that_o son_n of_o the_o mother_n sorrow_n as_o rachael_n pronounce_v of_o benjamin_n the_o birth_n of_o this_o son_n will_v be_v the_o death_n of_o his_o mother_n he_o 18._o come_v from_o her_o womb_n but_o he_o will_v not_o abide_v in_o her_o bosom_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n prodierunt_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la 1●_n sed_fw-la non_fw-la erant_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la nam_fw-la si_fw-la fuissent_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la permansissent_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la manifesti_fw-la sint_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la they_o go_v forth_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v remain_v with_o us._n but_o here_o by_o they_o be_v manifest_v not_o to_o be_v all_o of_o us._n and_o therefore_o to_o express_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a in_o a_o word_n the_o horror_n of_o this_o name_n as_o the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n cry_v unto_o elizcus_n the_o prophet_n after_o they_o have_v taste_v the_o pottage_n mors_fw-la in_o olla_fw-es vir_fw-la dei_fw-la mors_fw-la in_o olla_fw-es death_n be_v in_o the_o pot_n o_o man_n of_o god_n death_n be_v in_o the_o pot_n even_o so_o may_v i_o more_o just_o take_v up_o this_o complaint_n &_o cry_v out_o unto_o every_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n &_o that_o against_o all_o heresy_n &_o the_o very_a name_n heretic_n mors_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la mors_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la there_o be_v nothing_o but_o death_n &_o destruction_n desolation_n &_o damnation_n in_o this_o very_a name_n 27._o and_o here_o we_o shall_v be_v enforce_v as_o it_o be_v to_o ponder_v upon_o this_o point_n somewhat_o more_o at_o large_a and_o to_o extend_v the_o bond_n of_o this_o ensue_a consideration_n especial_o for_o so_o much_o as_o concern_v we_o so_o near_o as_o it_o do_v this_o matter_n can_v be_v but_o worthy_a of_o our_o weighty_a ponderation_n and_o the_o rather_o will_v we_o the_o more_o deliberate_o consider_v of_o this_o point_n for_o
most_o compassionate_a nay_o who_o bowel_n burn_v with_o compassion_n within_o they_o towards_o the_o great_a and_o grievous_a sinner_n as_o for_o example_n we_o read_v in_o that_o notable_a story_n of_o s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n who_o run_v up_o and_o down_o the_o mountain_n again_o and_o again_o after_o the_o first_o relapse_n to_o gain_v a_o young_a man_n that_o be_v a_o thief_n as_o s._n hierome_n and_o other_o church_n story_n witness_v yet_o these_o self_n same_o man_n be_v so_o severe_a against_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n truth_n that_o they_o never_o can_v so_o much_o as_o endure_v the_o very_a sight_n and_o conversation_n of_o a_o heretic_n and_o so_o we_o have_v not_o only_a s._n john_n counsel_v we_o not_o to_o salute_v or_o converse_v with_o a_o heretic_n but_o also_o the_o say_a apostle_n joan._n practise_v the_o same_o even_o in_o his_o own_o person_n in_o his_o heroical_a fact_n whensoever_o any_o just_a occasion_n be_v offer_v for_o s._n irenaeus_n who_o live_v in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o he_o and_o recount_v it_o upon_o the_o relation_n of_o s._n policarpe_n that_o live_v with_o s._n john_n and_o happy_o may_v be_v present_a when_o the_o thing_n be_v do_v record_v that_o s._n john_n be_v in_o the_o city_n of_o ephesus_n 3._o at_o a_o common_a bath_n whither_o many_o do_v resort_v and_o understand_v that_o a_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n name_v cerinthus_n be_v within_o the_o bath_n he_o instant_o depart_v again_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o that_o bath_n with_o he_o who_o have_v depart_v out_o of_o the_o church_n from_o he_o can_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o stay_v any_o while_n there_o affirm_v that_o he_o doubt_v lest_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o those_o bath_n will_v fall_v down_o where_o such_o a_o enemy_n of_o god_n be_v present_a who_o have_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lay_v ruinate_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n a_o notable_a example_n of_o this_o great_a apostle_n leave_v to_o all_o posterity_n give_v they_o a_o sufficient_a caveat_n even_o by_o his_o own_o person_n and_o example_n for_o avoid_v of_o heresy_n and_o heretical_a company_n 41._o and_o the_o same_o irenaeus_n in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n before_o cite_v register_v this_o story_n of_o s._n policarpe_n himself_o to_o wit_n how_o he_o reject_v and_o defy_v a_o heretic_n name_v martion_n that_o meet_v with_o he_o and_o speak_v unto_o he_o call_v the_o say_v martion_n primogenitum_fw-la diaboli_fw-la the_o first_o beget_v of_o the_o devil_n ibidem_fw-la and_o then_o the_o author_n end_v his_o narration_n with_o this_o most_o grave_a and_o memorable_a conclusion_n say_v so_o great_a fear_n have_v the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n not_o to_o communicate_v in_o any_o one_o word_n with_o any_o of_o those_o that_o have_v adulterate_v and_o corrupt_v the_o truth_n even_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v avoid_v a_o heretical_a man_n after_o one_o reprehension_n know_v that_o such_o a_o fellow_n be_v pervert_v &_o damn_v of_o himself_o so_o s._n irenaeus_n 42._o and_o true_o this_o one_o point_n minister_v unto_o i_o store_n of_o matter_n and_o exceed_o enlarge_v my_o meditation_n to_o consider_v on_o the_o one_o part_n how_o careful_a and_o not_o only_o careful_a but_o fearful_a these_o ancient_a father_n and_o apostle_n be_v as_o irenaeus_n testify_v to_o admit_v any_o conversation_n or_o to_o enter_v into_o communication_n with_o heretic_n fly_v they_o as_o monster_n serpent_n and_o devil_n upon_o earth_n and_o start_v affright_v as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o now_o in_o our_o day_n the_o name_n and_o thing_n itself_o be_v grow_v to_o be_v so_o common_a and_o familiar_a as_o that_o we_o seem_v to_o have_v no_o sense_n or_o feel_v thereof_o so_o senseless_a and_o benumb_a be_v we_o in_o our_o spiritual_a understanding_n but_o this_o proceed_v from_o a_o supine_n negligence_n and_o careless_a inconsideration_n for_o such_o as_o serious_o ponder_v and_o earnest_o debate_v the_o matter_n more_o deep_o do_v apprehend_v far_o otherwise_o thereof_o especial_o such_o as_o be_v addict_v to_o the_o read_n of_o ancient_a father_n the_o sure_a refuge_n and_o pillar_n for_o a_o resolve_a soul_n to_o rely_v upon_o for_o true_a direction_n in_o religion_n in_o these_o miserable_a day_n of_o schism_n heresy_n and_o apostasy_n nulla_fw-la say_v the_o old_a holy_a martyr_n s._n cyprian_a cum_fw-la talibus_fw-la commercia_fw-la copulentur_fw-la nulla_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o let_v no_o 1._o traffic_n or_o conversation_n be_v join_v with_o such_o man_n no_o banquet_n be_v make_v no_o speech_n have_v but_o let_v we_o be_v as_o separate_v from_o they_o as_o they_o be_v separate_v fugitive_n from_o the_o church_n 43._o and_o after_o this_o father_n again_o that_o atlas_n of_o his_o age_n and_o great_a saint_n s._n athanasius_n write_v the_o life_n of_o s._n antony_n the_o monk_n do_v set_v down_o the_o opinion_n and_o feel_v of_o they_o both_o in_o this_o point_n s._n antony_n say_v he_o do_v so_o detest_v heretic_n as_o that_o he_o tell_v all_o man_n that_o they_o must_v not_o so_o much_o as_o come_v near_o they_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o s._n paul_n for_o the_o same_o who_o often_o and_o serious_o talk_v of_o heretic_n do_v inculcate_v these_o word_n et_fw-la hos_fw-la antonius_fw-la devita_fw-la and_o these_o you_o must_v avoid_v and_o yet_o my_o author_n go_v further_a in_o this_o relation_n of_o s._n antony_n add_v this_o that_o when_o the_o say_v holy_a man_n be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n ready_a to_o breath_n out_o his_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o creator_n who_o he_o have_v with_o all_o fidelity_n and_o severity_n so_o faithful_o serve_v practise_v over_o and_o above_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n christ_n high_a counsel_n of_o perfection_n he_o exhort_v the_o stander_n by_o especial_o and_o above_o all_o other_o thing_n to_o beware_v of_o heretic_n and_o schifmatike_n and_o to_o avoid_v their_o poison_n meumque_fw-la say_v heretic_n he_o circaco_n edium_fw-la sectamini_fw-la seitisipsi_fw-la quod_fw-la nullus_fw-la mihi_fw-la ne_fw-la pacificus_fw-la quidem_fw-la sermo_fw-la cum_fw-la eye_n unquam_fw-la fuerit_fw-la and_o do_v you_o imitate_v my_o hatred_n towards_o they_o for_o yourselves_o can_v bear_v i_o witness_n that_o i_o have_v never_o so_o much_o as_o any_o peaceable_a speech_n with_o they_o this_o be_v s._n antony_n his_o resolution_n in_o this_o point_n and_o this_o be_v his_o last_o charge_n that_o this_o die_a saint_n leave_v unto_o his_o lyve_a friend_n 44._o and_o of_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o judgement_n be_v all_o other_o saint_n and_o holy_a father_n ensue_v that_o everlive_v and_o die_v in_o the_o union_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o namely_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a first_o of_o that_o name_n a_o most_o compassionate_a man_n other_o way_n as_o by_o his_o charitable_a work_n of_o piety_n well_o appear_v yet_o in_o this_o point_n of_o heresy_n he_o be_v so_o inflame_v with_o the_o zeal_n of_o god_n his_o true_a religion_n so_o rigorous_a and_o severe_a against_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n his_o truth_n that_o he_o burst_v forth_o into_o this_o vehement_a exclamation_n against_o they_o viperea_n haereticorum_fw-la vitate_fw-la colloquia_fw-la nihil_fw-la nobis_fw-la common_a sit_fw-la cum_fw-la eye_n qui_fw-la catholicae_fw-la adversantes_fw-la fidei_fw-la solo_fw-la 4._o nomine_fw-la sunt_fw-la christiani_n do_v you_o avoid_v the_o viperous_a and_o serpentine_a speech_n and_o conference_n of_o heretic_n &_o have_v you_o nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o they_o that_o be_v adversary_n unto_o catholic_a faith_n be_v only_a christian_n in_o name_n so_o s._n leo._n and_o in_o this_o point_n that_o heretic_n be_v not_o christian_n christian_n but_o only_o in_o name_n and_o appellation_n he_o have_v common_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n concur_v with_o he_o with_o uniform_a consent_n as_o namely_o s._n irenaeus_n s._n cyprian_n and_o tertullian_n before_o mention_v which_o father_n do_v evident_o prove_v 9_o that_o heretic_n be_v worse_o than_o heathen_n pagan_n or_o infidel_n this_o argument_n be_v handle_v in_o like_a manner_n by_o s._n chrysostome_n and_o that_o large_o in_o his_o 50._o homily_n ad_fw-la populum_fw-la antiochenum_fw-la and_o by_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 21._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 25._o &_o by_o many_o other_o father_n after_o they_o the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v set_v down_o by_o s._n thomas_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o second_o consideration_n 45._o upon_o these_o ground_n then_o reason_n cause_n and_o contemplation_n the_o whole_a stream_n and_o rank_n of_o ancient_a father_n do_v with_o full_a consent_n concur_v in_o this_o one_o point_n &_o do_v inculcate_v the_o same_o often_o in_o their_o write_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v
ignorant_a &_o unlearned_a yet_o be_v it_o the_o only_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n unto_o way_n the_o skilful_a and_o learned_a and_o that_o whereas_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v perfect_a and_o be_v of_o itself_o alone_o sufficient_a enough_o for_o all_o point_n what_o need_v the_o authority_n of_o ecclesiastical_a interpretation_n to_o be_v add_v unto_o this_o canon_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v and_o first_o this_o way_n we_o now_o speak_v of_o must_v be_v a_o way_n for_o all_o semita_fw-la via_fw-la &_o via_fw-la sancta_fw-la a_o path_n a_o way_n &_o holy_a way_n yea_o such_o a_o way_n if_o we_o believe_v almighty_a god_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o isaiah_n stulti_fw-la non_fw-la errent_fw-la per_fw-la eam_fw-la the_o most_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a can_v mistake_v it_o for_o that_o christ_n the_o way_n of_o all_o have_v leave_v this_o way_n unto_o all_o &_o that_o after_o 8._o his_o incarnation_n &_o passion_n for_o to_o that_o time_n the_o prophet_n isaiah_n allude_v &_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n exclude_v the_o ignorant_a for_o want_v of_o tongue_n and_o other_o learning_n &_o the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o be_v write_v before_o the_o say_a christ_n incarnation_n and_o passion_n can_v be_v this_o way_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o as_o the_o scripture_n alone_o can_v be_v the_o way_n unto_o the_o unlearned_a no_o more_o can_v it_o be_v the_o rule_n unto_o the_o learned_a for_o that_o not_o only_a fool_n but_o such_o as_o think_v themselves_o both_o learned_a and_o wise_a have_v err_v by_o that_o way_n of_o scripture_n alone_o and_o their_o private_a spirit_n to_o help_v they_o and_o hereof_o we_o have_v as_o many_o lively_a testimony_n and_o example_n as_o there_o have_v be_v learned_a heretic_n in_o the_o church_n who_o think_v themselves_o wise_a and_o learned_a and_o yet_o pretend_v scripture_n have_v run_v awry_o so_o dangerous_a a_o way_n be_v this_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n to_o walk_v in_o three_o and_o last_o touch_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o holy_a canon_n without_o any_o addition_n of_o ecclesiastical_a interpretation_n i_o answer_v this_o objection_n which_o be_v the_o main_a position_n and_o foundation_n for_o all_o the_o protestant_n heresy_n at_o this_o day_n be_v as_o ancient_a as_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o it_o be_v propose_v by_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n and_o answer_v thus_o to_o sacred_a canon_n say_v he_o 2._o the_o ecclesiastical_a interpretation_n must_v be_v add_v because_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o scripture_n sublimity_n all_o man_n expound_v it_o not_o in_o one_o &_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n but_o this_o man_n &_o that_o man_n do_v diverse_o interpret_v the_o self_n same_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o in_o a_o manner_n how_o many_o man_n there_o be_v so_o many_o sense_n may_v be_v wrest_v from_o it_o for_o novatian_n expound_v scripture_n one_o way_n photinus_n sabellius_n donatus_n arius_n another_o way_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o manifold_a turn_n and_o wind_n of_o several_a error_n and_o heresy_n it_o be_v very_o needful_a that_o the_o line_n of_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a interpretation_n be_v direct_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_a interpretation_n hitherto_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n 54._o and_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v all_o our_o material_a contention_n with_o the_o sectary_n and_o their_o own_o capital_a dissension_n among_o themselves_o fall_v by_o the_o ear_n and_o damn_v each_o other_o to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n let_v they_o pretend_v never_o so_o great_a brotherhood_n to_o cozen_v the_o world_n but_o about_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o to_o wit_n which_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o canon_n and_o how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v interpret_v according_a to_o the_o intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherein_o all_o heretic_n have_v upon_o their_o own_o wilful_a election_n run_v out_o of_o the_o way_n as_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v continual_o charge_n they_o scripture_n pugnantes_fw-la as_o they_o complain_v contra_fw-la scripturas_fw-la they_o abuse_v god_n word_n 9_o against_o himself_o and_o scripture_n bonis_fw-la non_fw-la bene_fw-la utentes_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v with_o they_o as_o a_o sword_n in_o a_o mad_a man_n hand_n they_o turn_v it_o against_o themselves_o make_v that_o unto_o they_o a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n which_o be_v give_v they_o by_o god_n to_o become_v a_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n as_o s._n paul_n profess_v himself_o and_o all_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o 16._o be_v for_o do_v not_o heretic_n receive_v some_o scripture_n &_o reject_v other_o and_o those_o that_o they_o do_v receive_v do_v they_o not_o turn_v they_o and_o wind_v they_o add_v to_o they_o &_o detract_v from_o they_o of_o purpose_n to_o pervert_v they_o for_o their_o purpose_n do_v they_o not_o expound_v they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n &_o brain_n 17._o this_o be_v tertullian_n his_o complaint_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n above_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o yet_o more_o sully_v to_o cur_n point_n in_o hand_n the_o same_o father_n show_v that_o it_o be_v but_o lose_a labour_n and_o vexation_n of_o mind_n to_o enter_v into_o conflict_n with_o a_o heretic_n by_o scripture_n say_v congressio_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la cum_fw-la haereticis_fw-la nihil_fw-la preficiat_a nisi_fw-la planè_fw-la ut_fw-la ibidem_fw-la aut_fw-la stomachi_fw-la quis_fw-la ineat_fw-la eu●●sicuem_fw-la aut_fw-la cerebri_fw-la the_o conflict_n about_o scripture_n with_o a_o herericke_a serve_v to_o no_o other_o purpose_n unless_o it_o be_v to_o overturn_v a_o man_n stomach_n or_o his_o brain_n again_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o demand_v quid_fw-la premovebis_fw-la exercitatissmè_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la cum_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la descnderis_fw-la negetur_fw-la si_fw-la ibidem_fw-la quidnegaveris_fw-la desendetur_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la quidem_fw-la nihil_fw-la perdis_fw-la nisi_fw-la vocem_fw-la in_o contentione_n nihil_fw-la consequeris_fw-la nisi_fw-la bilem_fw-la de_fw-la blasphematione_fw-la what_o shall_v thou_o gain_v albeit_o thou_o be_v most_o ready_a and_o expert_a in_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n for_o so_o much_o as_o if_o thou_o defend_v any_o thing_n it_o will_v be_v deny_v and_o if_o thou_o deny_v any_o thing_n it_o will_v be_v affirm_v and_o thou_o true_o for_o thy_o part_n lees_a nothing_o but_o spend_v thy_o voice_n in_o contention_n and_o shall_v gain_v nothing_o but_o choler_n by_o his_o blaspheme_n and_o then_o afterwards_o he_o flat_o conclude_v again_o against_o they_o wherefore_o say_v he_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n to_o the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v the_o 20._o combat_n to_o be_v place_v in_o they_o wherein_o there_o be_v either_o no_o victory_n at_o all_o or_o very_o uncertain_a or_o at_o least_o wise_a not_o any_o certain_a can_v be_v hope_v for_o frgo_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la scripturas_fw-la provecandum_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o his_o constituendum_fw-la certamen_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la aut_fw-la nulla_fw-la aut_fw-la incerta_fw-la aut_fw-la parùm_fw-la certa_fw-la est_fw-la victoria_fw-la so_o he_o 55._o this_o be_v tertullian_n his_o judgement_n touch_v scripture_n cite_v by_o the_o heretic_n in_o his_o time_n and_o do_v not_o this_o prescription_n serve_v against_o the_o sectary_n of_o our_o day_n well_o then_o i_o may_v conclude_v with_o tertullian_n his_o sense_n that_o this_o way_n of_o remit_v each_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o only_a scripture_n for_o certification_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o that_o promiscuous_o without_o a_o interpreter_n can_v be_v no_o certain_a or_o possible_a way_n evident_a rule_n or_o canon_n of_o faith_n now_o if_o the_o heretic_n be_v thus_o press_v &_o follow_v upon_o that_o his_o ground_n of_o scripture_n alone_o be_v enforce_v for_o avoid_v of_o all_o inconvenience_n and_o absurdity_n to_o adjoine_v and_o admit_v a_o interpreter_n then_o the_o question_n plain_o be_v who_o this_o interpreter_n shall_v be_v and_o of_o what_o faction_n in_o religion_n for_o of_o what_o sect_n soever_o he_o be_v to_o that_o side_n will_v he_o wrest_v and_o draw_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n et_fw-la tunc_fw-la say_v tertullian_n tantùm_fw-la 17._o veritati_fw-la obstrepit_fw-la adulter_fw-la sensus_fw-la quantùm_fw-la est_fw-la corruptor_n stylus_fw-la and_o then_o will_v a_o adulterous_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o much_o brabble_n against_o the_o truth_n as_o he_o that_o corrupt_v the_o text_n itself_o whereof_o he_o allege_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o holy_a writ_n be_v so_o fruitful_a to_o serve_v for_o each_o matter_n and_o point_n that_o come_v in_o question_n as_o nothing_o seem_v to_o a_o heretic_n so_o vain_a if_o it_o please_v his_o fancy_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v from_o thence_o neither_o do_v i_o hazard_v aught_o to_o say_v that_o the_o very_a scripture_n themselves_o be_v
majesty_n wise_a and_o religious_a hart_n who_o with_o that_o opinion_n may_v have_v make_v herself_o a_o protestant_n &_o thereby_o have_v escape_v the_o great_a part_n of_o her_o trouble_n and_o perhaps_o also_o have_v avoid_v the_o violent_a stroke_n of_o the_o axe_n which_o be_v well_o know_v to_o have_v be_v urge_v upon_o she_o especial_o in_o respect_n of_o her_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n that_o be_v conceyve_v least_o in_o time_n she_o may_v come_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o defend_v the_o same_o i_o mean_v her_o religion_n with_o public_a authority_n 67._o and_o now_o whosoever_o it_o be_v wherein_o i_o remit_v myself_o to_o his_o majesty_n as_o most_o interest_v therein_o both_o in_o honour_n body_n and_o soul_n as_o her_o only_a child_n and_o heir_n &_o chief_a jewel_n in_o the_o world_n evident_a it_o be_v the_o opinion_n can_v stand_v as_o now_o have_v be_v say_v either_o in_o reason_n or_o religion_n and_o may_v be_v presume_v to_o proceed_v from_o such_o as_o have_v little_a care_n of_o any_o religion_n at_o all_o only_o they_o will_v live_v quiet_o enjoy_v their_o sensuality_n pass_v the_o time_n without_o any_o trouble_n or_o scruple_n or_o repugnant_a conscience_n for_o any_o thing_n atheism_n touch_v religion_n or_o that_o whole_a subject_n and_o this_o if_o i_o take_v not_o my_o aim_n amiss_o come_v very_o near_o to_o the_o point_n of_o secret_a atheism_n 68_o s._n augustine_n record_v the_o like_a opinion_n of_o many_o in_o his_o day_n who_o think_v it_o do_v not_o material_o import_v they_o whether_o they_o be_v donatist_n or_o catholic_n so_o as_o they_o profess_v the_o christian_a faith_n multi_fw-la say_v he_o nihil_fw-la interest_n vincent_n credentes_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la cuique_fw-la parte_fw-la christianus_n sit_v ideo_fw-la permanebant_fw-la in_o parte_fw-la donati_n quia_fw-la ibi_fw-la nati_fw-la erant_fw-la etc._n etc._n many_o believe_v that_o it_o concern_v they_o not_o in_o what_o side_n or_o part_v each_o man_n be_v a_o christian_a so_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a therefore_o they_o remain_v on_o the_o party_n or_o faction_n of_o donatus_n the_o heretic_n for_o that_o they_o be_v bear_v therein_o but_o s._n augustine_n vehement_o confute_v this_o false_a pestilent_a and_o indulgent_a persuasion_n aswell_o in_o the_o place_n here_o cite_v as_o in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n confident_o teach_v and_o aver_n that_o a_o man_n be_v make_v a_o heretic_n by_o hold_v any_o one_o error_n obstinate_o against_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o damn_v also_o in_o ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la morbidum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la prawmque_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la si_fw-la correcti_fw-la ut_fw-la sanum_fw-la rectumque_fw-la sapiant_fw-la resistunt_fw-la 5●_n contumaciter_fw-la haeretici_fw-la fiunt_fw-la &_o foras_fw-la exeuntes_fw-la habentur_fw-la inimici_fw-la those_o who_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v infect_v with_o corrupt_a and_o naughty_a opinion_n if_o be_v admonish_v to_o believe_v wholesome_a and_o true_a doctrine_n they_o kick_v against_o it_o with_o contumacy_n then_o do_v they_o become_v heretic_n and_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n be_v hold_v for_o enemy_n so_o he_o and_o with_o the_o same_o severity_n hold_v he_o in_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n entitle_v ad_fw-la quod-vult-deum_a that_o the_o believe_v of_o any_o one_o heresy_n condemn_v already_o by_o the_o church_n or_o to_o be_v condemn_v if_o rise_v afterward_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o believer_n &_o obstinate_a defender_n no_o christian_n catholic_a &_o consequent_o a_o heretic_n &_o so_o impossible_a to_o be_v save_v 69._o to_o this_o opinion_n subscribe_v s._n cyprian_n who_o show_v that_o every_o least_o heresy_n or_o schism_n be_v able_a to_o damn_v a_o man_n that_o adher_v unto_o it_o write_v express_o thus_o beatus_fw-la joannes_n apostolus_fw-la nec_fw-la ipse_fw-la ullam_fw-la haeresim_fw-la aut_fw-la schisma_fw-la discrevit_fw-la sed_fw-la magn._n universos_fw-la qui_fw-la ex_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la exijssent_fw-la antichristos_n appellavit_fw-la s._n john_n the_o apostle_n himself_o do_v not_o put_v any_o difference_n or_o exception_n of_o any_o heresy_n or_o schism_n at_o all_o but_o call_v they_o antichrist_n whosoever_o be_v go_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n for_o any_o heresy_n or_o schism_n whatsoever_o 70._o and_o yet_o this_o point_n be_v press_v further_o by_o many_o other_o holy_a father_n yea_o strain_v to_o every_o heresy_n be_v it_o but_o in_o one_o word_n or_o syllable_n and_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o medium_n s._n hierome_n his_o word_n be_v these_o propter_fw-la unum_fw-la verbum_fw-la aut_fw-la duo_fw-la quae_fw-la contraria_fw-la essent_fw-la fidei_fw-la multas_fw-la haereses_fw-la eiectas_fw-la esse_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la we_o shall_v read_v that_o many_o heresy_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o one_o or_o two_o word_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o receive_v faith_n 71._o to_o this_o purpose_n conduce_v that_o of_o s._n basill_n register_v by_o theodoret_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o good_a man_n ought_v to_o loose_v his_o life_n if_o need_v require_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o one_o only_a syllable_n pro_fw-la 17._o desensione_n unius_fw-la syllabae_fw-la divinorum_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v touch_v as_o well_o by_o s._n athanasius_n in_o his_o creed_n where_o he_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v most_o certain_o be_v damn_v that_o hould_v not_o entire_o and_o inviolable_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n as_o also_o by_o nazianzen_n when_o he_o say_v that_o heresy_n consist_v sometime_o in_o one_o word_n initio_fw-la his_o word_n be_v these_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o perilcus_fw-la then_o heretic_n who_o run_v whole_o over_o all_o do_v notuill_a stand_n in_o some_o one_o word_n as_o by_o a_o drop_n of_o poison_n infect_v the_o sincere_a &_o simple_a faith_n of_o our_o saviour_n come_v down_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o antiquity_n so_o severe_a censurer_n be_v all_o those_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o least_o dram_n of_o heresy_n 72._o thus_o than_o you_o apparent_o see_v that_o for_o make_v of_o a_o error_n or_o heresy_n damnable_a it_o be_v not_o require_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n that_o it_o deny_v some_o thing_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n direct_o or_o some_o main_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n etc._n etc._n as_o many_o of_o the_o first_o old_a heresy_n do_v when_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v not_o so_o well_o explain_v as_o now_o it_o be_v though_o this_o be_v a_o desperate_a shift_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o most_o miserable_a evasion_n and_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n he_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n in_o all_o those_o high_a point_n yea_o &_o of_o misbelief_n almost_o in_o every_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n for_o that_o as_o before_o have_v be_v touch_v in_o the_o three_o consideration_n the_o greatness_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o heresy_n depend_v more_o of_o malice_n and_o malignity_n damnable_a of_o the_o sinner_n then_o of_o the_o material_a object_n about_o which_o the_o heretic_n err_v for_o that_o he_o sin_v of_o obstinacy_n and_o contumacy_n by_o his_o own_o choice_n and_o therefore_o be_v say_v by_o s._n paul_n to_o be_v damn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n quia_fw-la eligit_fw-la sibi_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la damnatur_fw-la say_v tertullian_n he_o choose_v to_o himself_o wherein_o to_o be_v damn_v or_o else_o as_o s._n leo_n do_v more_o eutich_n large_o give_v the_o gloss_n propria_fw-la pertinacia_fw-la perit_fw-la &_o sua_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la discedit_fw-la in_o sania_fw-la qui_fw-la eam_fw-la impietatem_fw-la per_fw-la quam_fw-la multos_fw-la ante_fw-la se_fw-la scit_fw-la perusse_n sectatur_fw-la &_o religiosum_fw-la atque_fw-la catholicum_fw-la putat_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la iudicio_fw-la damnatum_fw-la esse_fw-la constat_fw-la that_o be_v he_o perish_v by_o his_o own_o pertinacity_n and_o through_o his_o own_o peculiar_a madness_n depart_v from_o christ_n who_o embrace_v that_o impiety_n which_o he_o know_v have_v be_v the_o destruction_n of_o many_o hold_v that_o for_o religious_a and_o catholic_n which_o manifest_o appear_v to_o be_v condemn_v by_o uniform_a judgement_n of_o ancient_a father_n so_o bless_a leo_n expound_v the_o place_n the_o reason_n follow_v for_o that_o such_o a_o one_o prefer_v himself_o by_o pride_n and_o vanity_n before_o the_o whole_a visible_a and_o catholic_a church_n he_o choose_v to_o hold_v that_o which_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o fancy_n do_v lead_v he_o unto_o whence_o it_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o one_o man_n err_v with_o less_o pride_n and_o obstinacy_n about_o some_o point_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n may_v sin_v less_o damnable_o than_o another_o that_o err_v in_o point_n of_o lesser_a moment_n but_o with_o more_o malice_n as_o about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o other_o point_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v for_o that_o this_o second_o err_v with_o more_o obstinacy_n and_o malice_n which_o corroborate_v the_o
very_a essence_n of_o heresy_n than_o the_o first_o though_o both_o of_o these_o man_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v damn_v but_o yet_o with_o different_a measure_n of_o punishment_n 73._o this_o fearful_a conclusion_n then_o of_o damnation_n stand_v a_o foot_n and_o remain_v in_o full_a force_n to_o be_v inflict_v upon_o all_o kind_n of_o heretic_n we_o be_v now_o and_o next_o to_o consider_v whether_o the_o protestant_n opinion_n at_o this_o day_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o catholic_n be_v true_o heresy_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o second_o we_o be_v to_o discuss_v whether_o the_o different_a sort_n sect_n and_o profession_n of_o the_o say_v protestant_a religion_n among_o themselves_o especial_o the_o principal_a as_o lutheran_n &_o sacramentary_n in_o germany_n be_v heresy_n to_o the_o other_o and_o the_o like_a of_o puritan_n and_o protestant_n in_o england_n all_o original_o rise_v from_o martin_n luther_n i_o say_v we_o be_v to_o consider_v whether_o all_o these_o several_a head_n be_v heretic_n indeed_o the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o or_o may_v be_v save_v together_o each_o man_n die_v in_o his_o own_o religion_n 74._o to_o proceed_v then_o in_o order_n unto_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o particular_n and_o first_o that_o protestant_a religion_n in_o many_o great_a point_n throughout_o the_o main_n corpse_n of_o controversy_n now_o in_o hand_n be_v true_o heresy_n to_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a heresy_n faith_n and_o catholic_n religion_n this_o point_n be_v so_o clear_o need_v no_o further_a dispute_n for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o protestant_n do_v open_o avouch_v above_o a_o hundred_o position_n against_o the_o same_o roman_n catholic_n church_n defend_v the_o same_o with_o obstinate_a resolution_n and_o the_o late_a general_a council_n of_o trent_n where_o the_o flower_n piety_n and_o learning_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a christian_n world_n under_o one_o spreame_a pastor_n and_o infallible_a conduct_n of_o god_n his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v assemble_v have_v discuss_v examine_v according_a to_o ancient_a ground_n of_o holy_a father_n discover_v for_o heretical_a and_o thereupon_o have_v anathematise_v 125._o point_n by_o name_n and_o that_o in_o so_o many_o different_a canon_n enact_v concern_v the_o sacrament_n only_o and_o the_o controversy_n of_o justification_n beside_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o say_v the_o case_n be_v thus_o clear_a against_o they_o and_o their_o conviction_n so_o manifest_a there_o need_v no_o further_a dispute_n for_o if_o by_o s._n augustine_n his_o judgement_n even_o now_o allege_v and_o other_o father_n of_o great_a learning_n and_o credit_n in_o the_o church_n one_o only_a erroneous_a proposition_n or_o assertion_n hold_v with_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o know_v christian_a church_n be_v convince_v for_o a_o point_n of_o heresy_n and_o hold_v for_o a_o matter_n of_o most_o certain_a damnation_n to_o the_o houlder_n for_o that_o it_o cast_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o say_a church_n out_o of_o which_o be_v no_o salvation_n what_o be_v to_o be_v infer_v where_o so_o many_o condenned_a assertion_n be_v hold_v against_o the_o know_a church_n &_o authority_n thereof_o 75._o to_o the_o second_o also_o to_o wit_n whether_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n who_o make_v the_o first_o division_n of_o protestant_n whilst_o luther_n himself_o be_v yet_o alive_a be_v true_o and_o proper_o heretic_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o salvation_n of_o one_o be_v the_o damnation_n of_o the_o other_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o sectary_n can_v be_v save_v this_o be_v with_o as_o great_a facility_n prove_v as_o the_o former_a and_o that_o first_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o martin_n luther_n himself_o the_o original_a author_n of_o all_o these_o late_a sect_n and_o then_o by_o the_o mutual_a and_o concur_v consent_n of_o all_o the_o lutheran_n doctor_n pastor_n and_o prelate_n that_o succeed_v he_o 76._o first_o i_o say_v it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o luther_n himself_o ever_o repute_v the_o sacramentary_n that_o comprehend_v both_o zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n for_o dammnable_a and_o intolerable_a heretic_n let_v his_o own_o testification_n often_o reiterated_a and_o serious_o aggravate_v in_o diverse_a of_o his_o book_n be_v a_o sufficient_a confirmation_n of_o this_o his_o first_o serious_a censure_n denounce_v against_o they_o all_o be_v this_o haereticos_fw-la seriò_fw-la censemus_fw-la &_o alienos_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la zuinglianos_fw-la sacramentarios_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la negant_fw-la christi_fw-la lovaniens_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la ore_fw-la carnali_fw-la sumi_fw-la in_o venerabili_fw-la eucharistia_n we_o do_v serious_o censure_v for_o heretic_n and_o alien_n from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o zwinglians_n and_o all_o other_o sacramentary_n who_o do_v deny_v that_o christ_n sacred_a body_n and_o heretic_n blood_n be_v receive_v by_o our_o carnal_a mouth_n in_o the_o venerable_a eucharist_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o clear_o or_o determine_v more_o effectual_o than_o this_o or_o can_v any_o caluinist_n with_o any_o face_n hereafter_o exempt_v himself_o from_o out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o be_v accurse_v and_o condemn_v by_o their_o own_o grand_a progenitor_n 77._o the_o same_o in_o effect_n he_o have_v in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la jacobum_fw-la presbyterum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la bremensis_n his_o word_n be_v these_o all_o sacramentary_n that_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v heretic_n and_o for_o such_o to_o be_v avoid_v and_o yet_o in_o a_o three_o place_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v he_o have_v alter_v his_o judgement_n de_fw-la coena_fw-la domini_fw-la of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o condemn_v by_o name_n for_o damn_a heretic_n the_o very_a first_o author_n of_o sacramentary_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n carolostadius_fw-la oecolampadius_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o questionless_a calvin_n have_v never_o escape_v his_o singer_n as_o sly_a a_o heretic_n as_o he_o be_v have_v he_o be_v then_o either_o of_o name_n or_o note_v well_o his_o final_a and_o irrevokable_a doom_n for_o it_o be_v denounce_v against_o they_o in_o his_o decrepit_a age_n be_v this_o ego_fw-la tamquam_fw-la alterum_fw-la pedem_fw-la iam_fw-la habens_fw-la in_o sepulchro_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o be_v now_o old_a and_o have_v as_o it_o be_v one_o foot_n in_o my_o grave_n do_v yet_o carry_v this_o testimony_n &_o glory_n with_o i_o to_o the_o tribunal_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o with_o all_o my_o hart_n i_o have_v condemn_v as_o enemy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n carolostadius_fw-la zuinglius_fw-la and_o oecolampadius_n and_o all_o their_o disciple_n and_o follower_n and_o have_v avoid_v their_o company_n &_o have_v no_o familiarity_n with_o they_o either_o by_o letter_n write_n word_n or_o deed_n as_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v not_o to_o have_v with_o heretic_n thus_o much_o of_o luther_n himself_o 78._o and_o now_o if_o we_o shall_v prosecute_v the_o several_a iudgmente_n and_o censure_n of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o learned_a lutheran_n against_o sacramentary_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o heresy_n and_o namely_o against_o caluiniste_n who_o be_v of_o no_o reckon_n in_o luther_n day_n for_o that_o their_o new_a heresy_n be_v but_o then_o a_o hatch_n there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n and_o i_o shall_v rather_o fill_v a_o large_a volume_n then_o contain_v myself_o with_o in_o the_o precinct_n of_o my_o brief_a intend_a consideration_n let_v one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o principal_n serve_v for_o all_o mathias_n illyricus_n a_o great_a lutheran_n superintendent_n of_o saxony_n and_o one_o of_o those_o four_o that_o compile_v the_o lie_a century_n do_v in_o a_o certain_a book_n entitle_v desensio_fw-la consessionis_fw-la martinistarum_fw-la or_o luther_n anorum_fw-la censure_n caluinistarum_fw-la lyturgiam_fw-la the_o lyturgy_n or_o service_n of_o the_o caluinist_n not_o only_o for_o heretical_a but_o to_o be_v sacrilegious_a also_o et_fw-la proh_o dolour_n say_v he_o innumeras_fw-la animas_fw-la aeterno_fw-la exitio_fw-la involuere_fw-la and_o to_o involve_v alas_o innumerable_a soul_n with_o everlasting_a perdition_n 79._o franciscus_n stancarus_n also_o no_o mean_a author_n one_o of_o the_o lutheran_n side_n write_v to_o the_o king_n of_o polonia_n in_o his_o day_n pronounce_v confident_o of_o all_o those_o new_a professor_n under_o calvin_n in_o geneva_n that_o they_o be_v publici_fw-la &_o manifesti_fw-la haeretici_fw-la notorious_a and_o manifest_a heretic_n and_o yet_o as_o though_o this_o be_v little_a the_o same_o author_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la prescribe_v this_o caveat_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n concern_v calvin_n and_o will_v to_o god_n it_o be_v as_o well_o remember_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o university_n of_o england_n where_o young_a divine_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n poison_v with_o the_o drug_n and_o dregs_n of_o calvin_n doctrine_n my_o hart_n bleed_v to_o think_v of_o it_o before_o they_o can_v taste_v of_o the_o pure_a liquor_n of_o
child_n and_o after_o the_o say_a law_n be_v write_v also_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v not_o remit_v promiscuous_o hand_n over_o head_n to_o the_o read_n of_o those_o book_n but_o he_o be_v send_v to_o take_v his_o instruction_n and_o institution_n from_o the_o ordinary_a superior_n doctor_n governor_n of_o that_o church_n and_o these_o be_v to_o expound_v the_o law_n unto_o he_o for_o which_o direction_n and_o tradition_n we_o find_v this_o warrant_n and_o command_v yea_o prescribe_v authority_n ask_v thy_o father_n and_o 7._o they_o will_v tell_v thou_o thy_o elder_n and_o they_o will_v declare_v unto_o thou_o again_o the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n preserve_v knowledge_n and_o yet_o in_o a_o three_o place_n i_o know_v that_o abraham_n will_v demand_v and_o teach_v his_o son_n and_o househould_v 19_o that_o they_o walk_v in_o my_o way_n etc._n etc._n 17._o and_o now_o to_o come_v from_o the_o law_n to_o the_o gospel_n from_o moses_n unto_o christ_n and_o so_o to_o proceed_v orderly_o with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n as_o god_n be_v no_o changeling_n but_o ever_o like_o himself_o even_o so_o the_o beginning_n proceed_v establish_v of_o the_o new_a christian_a faith_n and_o church_n be_v not_o much_o unlike_a if_o not_o altogether_o resemble_v the_o former_a for_o first_o this_o church_n be_v plant_v by_o our_o saviour_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o speedy_o by_o the_o industrious_a ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n assist_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o neither_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o apostle_n the_o principal_a pillar_n of_o the_o church_n have_v as_o at_o this_o time_n any_o write_a instruction_n or_o methodical_a institution_n deliver_v unto_o they_o concern_v their_o teach_n preach_v or_o believe_v except_o only_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n in_o the_o church_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o subsequent_a consideration_n second_o the_o institution_n that_o they_o have_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o instruction_n from_o our_o saviour_n his_o mouth_n and_o from_o the_o immediate_a instinct_n suggestion_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v promise_v by_o christ_n himself_o who_o can_v not_o lie_v nor_o deceive_v to_o assist_v the_o church_n continual_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n and_o by_o this_o institution_n and_o inspiration_n alone_o 20._o they_o teach_v and_o convert_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n institute_v church_n establish_v law_n and_o order_n of_o life_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o tradition_n only_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n before_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o some_o year_n and_o that_o in_o the_o infancy_n and_o purity_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o the_o protestant_n must_v perforce_o confess_v three_o when_o the_o wisdom_n of_o heaven_n think_v it_o expedient_a that_o something_o shall_v be_v write_v the_o first_o thing_n commit_v unto_o write_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n and_o this_o be_v collect_v and_o digest_v in_o that_o very_a order_n as_o it_o be_v now_o present_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o some_o eight_o year_n after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n then_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n mark_v some_o five_o year_n after_o that_o &_o then_o that_o of_o s._n luke_n write_v twelve_o year_n after_o the_o former_a wherein_o diverse_a thing_n omit_v in_o the_o other_o gospel_n of_o be_v record_v and_o last_o of_o all_o be_v write_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n contain_v in_o it_o many_o great_a and_o important_a matter_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o be_v not_o write_v of_o 66._o year_n after_o the_o first_o visible_a christian_a church_n be_v plant_v and_o establish_v by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 18._o and_o now_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v write_v upon_o particular_a scripture_n occasion_n so_o especial_o be_v this_o famous_a gospel_n of_o s._n john_n which_o be_v the_o very_a key_n open_v the_o door_n unto_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o particular_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o ebion_n and_o cerinthus_n their_o heresy_n which_o impugn_a the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n whereupon_o i_o do_v infer_v that_o for_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o church_n be_v for_o diverse_a year_n without_o any_o scripture_n at_o all_o and_o for_o 66._o year_n which_o be_v the_o age_n of_o a_o man_n the_o point_n relate_v by_o s._n john_n more_o than_o be_v utter_v in_o the_o other_o ghospell_n which_o be_v many_o and_o most_o important_a be_v receive_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n only_o and_o now_o for_o conclusion_n of_o all_o i_o will_v demand_v but_o one_o thing_n of_o the_o protestant_n that_o make_v such_o show_n of_o appeal_n unto_o scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n &_o this_o be_v demand_v above_o 1400._o year_n ago_o by_o s._n irenaus_n before_o cite_v who_o live_v in_o the_o very_a next_o 4._o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o very_a like_o occasion_n sineque_fw-la apostoli_fw-la scripturas_fw-la reliquissent_fw-la nobis_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o yet_o ought_v not_o we_o to_o follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o leave_v to_o those_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v their_o church_n so_o that_o holy_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n especial_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n since_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o save_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n continue_v for_o 2000_o year_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o for_o many_o other_o year_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n only_o without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o word_n write_v 19_o whereby_o we_o can_v but_o discern_v and_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o scripture_n or_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o absolute_a necessary_a for_o the_o reveal_n of_o god_n his_o will_n unto_o man_n kind_n and_o the_o continue_n of_o man_n in_o that_o save_a knowledge_n of_o he_o but_o that_o his_o divine_a majesty_n may_v have_v propagate_v and_o preserve_v his_o doctrine_n and_o man_n in_o the_o truth_n by_o tradition_n only_o of_o word_n of_o mouth_n without_o any_o scripture_n at_o all_o if_o it_o have_v so_o please_v he_o as_o he_o do_v for_o many_o age_n and_o generation_n together_o both_o before_o the_o first_o great_a deluge_n by_o water_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o first_o patriarch_n until_o abraban_n his_o time_n who_o he_o choose_v for_o the_o head_n of_o his_o people_n as_o also_o afterwards_o when_o he_o direct_v the_o same_o people_n by_o like_a tradition_n as_o well_o in_o egypt_n where_o they_o remain_v in_o most_o cruel_a bondage_n for_o 400._o year_n as_o else_o where_o before_o moses_n write_v his_o forename_a book_n and_o the_o like_a he_o may_v have_v do_v with_o christian_n to_o the_o world_n great_a general_a consummation_n &_o last_o inundation_n by_o a_o flood_n of_o fire_n according_a to_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o sentence_n if_o he_o have_v list_v as_o have_v institute_v a_o more_o orderly_o exact_a and_o authorize_v church_n yea_o and_o have_v endue_v it_o with_o great_a privilege_n according_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o new_a law_n above_o the_o old_a than_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o the_o former_a of_o the_o jew_n whereupon_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v by_o force_n of_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o this_o church_n and_o pure_a authority_n thereof_o both_o in_o propound_v scripture_n unto_o we_o and_o discern_v the_o same_o which_o be_v true_o scripture_n and_o which_o be_v not_o as_o also_o for_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o mean_v thereof_o in_o their_o interpretation_n and_o exposition_n be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v respect_v by_o we_o than_o be_v that_o of_o the_o jew_n forasmuch_o as_o christ_n our_o saviour_n promise_v the_o continual_a assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n unto_o this_o church_n and_o that_o in_o such_o measure_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v alone_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v all_o the_o infernal_a power_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n idest_fw-la the_o very_a entrance_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o error_n or_o here_o into_o it_o whatsoever_o 20._o these_o then_o that_o never_o so_o solemn_o and_o never_o so_o scripture_n confident_o profess_v that_o they_o for_o their_o part_n do_v believe_v and_o follow_v the_o scripture_n without_o due_a reference_n or_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n forsomuch_o as_o all_o sectary_n and_o heretikc_n that_o
paul_n to_o the_o hebrew_n compare_v it_o &_o be_v there_o no_o danger_n of_o cut_v and_o wound_v and_o kill_v by_o this_o sword_n if_o it_o be_v unwary_o handle_v scriptura_fw-la sancta_fw-la say_v s._n ambrose_n attento_fw-it animo_fw-la legenda_fw-la ne_fw-la quis_fw-la have_v cum_fw-la legerit_fw-la cap._n quasi_fw-la pver_fw-la macheram_fw-la tractare_fw-la per_fw-la injantiam_fw-la fortiora_fw-la arma_fw-la nesciret_fw-la magic_a vulnus_fw-la ex_fw-la imprudentia_fw-la quam_fw-la salutem_fw-la ex_fw-la lectione_n sentiret_fw-la infirmos_fw-la enim_fw-la tela_fw-la sua_fw-la vulnerant_fw-la nec_fw-la potest_fw-la bene_fw-la uti_fw-la armis_fw-la qui_fw-la ea_fw-la far_o non_fw-la noverit_fw-la sacred_a scripture_n must_v be_v heedful_o read_v lest_o any_o man_n that_o read_v they_o be_v unskilful_a to_o handle_v these_o strong_a weapon_n as_o a_o child_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o infancy_n skill_v not_o how_o to_o handle_v a_o sword_n and_o consequent_o rather_o receive_v and_o incur_v the_o wound_n of_o damnation_n through_o his_o imprudency_n abuse_v they_o than_o the_o help_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o right_a read_n of_o they_o for_o the_o weak_a be_v wound_v by_o their_o own_o weapon_n neither_o can_v he_o use_v weapon_n well_o who_o know_v not_o to_o wield_v they_o 43._o it_o be_v excellent_o observe_v by_o theophilact_n and_o it_o be_v the_o common_a observation_n of_o all_o the_o father_n that_o when_o the_o apostle_n curiousl_o inquire_v nondum_fw-la enim_fw-la ex_fw-la alto_fw-mi spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la repleti_fw-la for_o as_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v come_v upon_o none_o of_o they_o afterthe_a knowledge_n of_o the_o day_n and_o hour_n of_o judgement_n when_o the_o time_n precise_o shall_v be_v occultat_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la ignorat_fw-la diem_fw-la he_o hide_v the_o day_n he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o day_n let_v calvin_n and_o his_o sectary_n blaspheme_v as_o long_o as_o they_o will_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n sacred_a humanity_n and_o the_o reason_n render_v of_o this_o ne_o cognitio_fw-la diei_fw-la iudicij_fw-la tanquam_fw-la machera_fw-la etc._n etc._n lest_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n reveal_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o apostle_n shall_v prove_v a_o sword_n put_v into_o a_o child_n hand_n thus_o than_o you_o see_v both_o by_o all_o former_a example_n and_o especial_o by_o this_o last_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o what_o a_o dangerous_a way_n the_o path_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o walk_v in_o if_o we_o be_v not_o wary_o guide_v therein_o for_o as_o by_o the_o native_a and_o genuine_a interpretation_n of_o god_n sacred_a epistle_n as_o s._n gregory_n style_v holy_a write_v man_n be_v direct_v aright_o through_o the_o surge_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o this_o world_n to_o arrive_v secure_o at_o the_o haven_n of_o salvation_n even_o so_o by_o the_o erroneous_a and_o false_a exposition_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n man_n be_v deceitful_o misguide_v &_o wrongful_o lead_v as_o it_o be_v blindfolded_a into_o the_o brake_n and_o brier_n of_o pestiferous_a and_o pernicious_a heresy_n to_o the_o everlasting_a damnation_n both_o of_o the_o beginner_n and_o follower_n 44._o s._n paul_n call_v the_o scripture_n the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n and_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n which_o as_o it_o be_v true_a in_o that_o place_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o save_n of_o some_o and_o the_o perish_v of_o other_o so_o it_o be_v most_o true_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o right_n sense_v of_o it_o by_o the_o son_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n who_o follow_v catholic_a interpretation_n and_o the_o wrong_n interpret_n of_o it_o by_o other_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o adhere_v unto_o false_a exposition_n and_o heretical_a innovation_n 45._o tertullian_n of_o opinion_n that_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o be_v so_o dispose_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v prescript_n minister_v matter_n unto_o heretic_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o read_v in_o scripture_n that_o there_o must_v be_v heretic_n which_o without_o scripture_n can_v not_o be_v and_o yet_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o christ_n prophetical_a prediction_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o judas_n treason_n but_o rather_o man_v temerarious_a presumption_n upon_o god_n word_n and_o heresy_n precipitate_a intrusion_n into_o his_o book_n by_o erroneous_a and_o false_a conceit_a opinion_n be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o all_o error_n and_o heresy_n 46._o s._n augustine_n write_v to_o consentius_n do_v excellent_o discover_v the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n in_o these_o word_n omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la scripture_n as_o sibt_fw-mi videntur_fw-la scrutari_fw-la cum_fw-la suos_fw-la potiùs_fw-la scrutentur_fw-la errores_fw-la &_o per_fw-la hoc_fw-la non_fw-la quòd_fw-la eas_fw-la contemnant_fw-la sed_fw-la quód_fw-la eas_fw-la non_fw-la intelligant_fw-la haeretici_fw-la fiant_fw-la all_o heretic_n to_o seem_v to_o themselves_o to_o follow_v scripture_n when_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o rather_o follow_v their_o own_o error_n and_o hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v make_v heretic_n not_o for_o that_o they_o contemn_v the_o scripture_n but_o for_o that_o they_o understand_v they_o not_o 47._o but_o hear_v i_o think_v i_o hear_v the_o heretic_n object_n answer_v as_o i_o have_v hear_v they_o often_o while_o i_o do_v frequent_v their_o heretical_a conventicle_n and_o sermon_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o word_n be_v near_o we_o not_o far_o from_o we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o lantern_n unto_o our_o step_n and_o a_o light_n unto_o our_o path_n and_o thus_o will_v they_o fly_v through_o the_o law_n and_o the_o psalm_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o vincentius_n note_v of_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n to_o prove_v the_o facility_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v 8._o and_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v true_a in_o respect_n of_o sundry_a passage_n of_o holy_a 35._o writ_n where_o the_o lamb_n may_v wade_v as_o well_o as_o the_o elephant_n may_v swymme_n yet_o that_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v hard_a intricate_a mystical_a and_o very_o apt_a to_o be_v mistake_v beside_o many_o proof_n and_o those_o most_o pregnant_a that_o may_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n the_o experience_n of_o our_o unfortunate_a day_n do_v most_o clear_o evince_v 48._o for_o otherwise_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o all_o christendom_n be_v in_o a_o uproar_n about_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n how_o grow_v so_o many_o contention_n among_o the_o learned_a at_o this_o day_n why_o have_v we_o so_o desperate_a and_o obstinate_a heresy_n ground_v as_o the_o heretic_n think_v upon_o such_o apparent_a and_o pregnant_a place_n of_o scripture_n as_o that_o the_o author_n thereof_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o and_o deceive_a other_o by_o the_o scripture_n will_v rather_o desperate_o choose_v to_o loose_v their_o life_n &_o their_o soul_n together_o then_o to_o forgo_v and_o abjure_v their_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o once_o by_o the_o least_o apparent_a show_n of_o scripture_n they_o have_v begin_v to_o defend_v these_o man_n though_o never_o so_o learned_a never_o so_o wise_a never_o so_o moral_o virtuous_a yet_o be_v they_o deceive_v shall_v i_o say_v by_o scripture_n nay_o rather_o they_o wilful_o by_o their_o own_o heretical_a choice_n against_o the_o know_a interpretation_n of_o catholic_a church_n roman_a church_n ancient_a church_n abuse_v the_o scripture_n and_o so_o be_v deceive_v entangle_v blindfolded_a and_o this_o they_o can_v never_o be_v bring_v unto_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o easy_a that_o a_o private_a spirit_n may_v interpret_v without_o the_o public_a spirit_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o this_o s._n augustine_n allude_v say_v multis_fw-la &_o multiplicibus_fw-la obscuritatibus_fw-la &_o ambiguitatibus_fw-la decipiuntur_fw-la qui_fw-la temerè_fw-la legunt_fw-la scripturas_fw-la 6._o aliud_fw-la pro_fw-la alto_fw-mi sentientes_fw-la they_o which_o do_v rash_o read_v scripture_n be_v deceive_v with_o many_o and_o sundry_a obscuritye_n and_o ambiguity_n take_v one_o sense_n for_o another_o which_o will_v not_o be_v if_o all_o be_v easy_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o all_o sectary_n do_v pretend_v 49._o the_o understanding_n then_o and_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o very_a main_n point_n which_o import_v and_o importune_v we_o for_o our_o salvation_n and_o in_o seek_v out_o this_o if_o ever_o by_o seek_v we_o mean_v to_o find_v it_o we_o must_v first_o abandon_v our_o own_o judgement_n and_o particular_a election_n and_o embrace_v the_o common_a &_o public_a judgement_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n this_o be_v the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o be_v the_o controller_n and_o guider_n of_o all_o certain_a and_o sure_a exposition_n expetitque_fw-la hic_fw-la sensus_fw-la certae_fw-la interpretationis_fw-la gubernaculum_fw-la to_o cite_v the_o whole_a sentence_n out_o of_o tertullian_n this_o
all_o ancient_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n fail_v not_o be_v first_o to_o admit_v and_o reverence_n that_o for_o scripture_n which_o the_o universal_a catholic_a church_n have_v by_o lineal_a descent_n of_o tradition_n deliver_v and_o commend_v unto_o we_o for_o scripture_n and_o that_o after_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n discuss_v about_o the_o same_o and_o not_o that_o which_o luther_n or_o calvin_n who_o can_v make_v &_o unmake_v scripture_n at_o their_o pleasure_n or_o our_o own_o private_a spirit_n shall_v conceit_n to_o be_v scripture_n and_o second_o for_o the_o sense_n and_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o we_o have_v any_o care_n of_o that_o or_o imagine_v that_o it_o do_v import_v we_o at_o all_o we_o be_v no_o less_o to_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o say_a church_n for_o the_o exposition_n and_o interpretation_n thereof_o than_o we_o do_v before_o for_o the_o deliver_v of_o scripture_n unto_o us._n and_o so_o much_o for_o this_o chapter_n the_o three_o chapter_n concern_v the_o second_o point_v or_o general_n head_n profess_v by_o his_o majesty_n concern_v his_o believe_v of_o the_o three_o creed_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n as_o the_o former_a offer_n so_o constant_o aver_v by_o his_o majesty_n of_o england_n concern_v the_o believe_v of_o all_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v a_o sign_n and_o liberal_a token_n of_o a_o religious_a inclination_n zealous_a affection_n and_o pious_a disposition_n as_o before_o have_v be_v intimate_v and_o relate_v even_o so_o no_o less_o religious_a zealous_a and_o pious_a be_v this_o assertion_n also_o here_o so_o confident_o assever_v by_o his_o highness_n touch_v the_o acceptance_n and_o admittance_n of_o the_o three_o ancient_a creed_n and_o that_o in_o the_o very_a same_o sense_n as_o the_o ancient_a father_n &_o counsel_n that_o make_v they_o do_v understand_v they_o for_o these_o be_v his_o majesty_n very_a word_n which_o i_o have_v think_v good_a here_o to_o relate_v wish_v they_o to_o remain_v upon_o a_o everlasting_a and_o time-out-wearing_a record_n and_o that_o for_o these_o two_o principal_a reason_n first_o that_o i_o may_v not_o undutiful_o forget_v to_o defer_v and_o bring_v the_o just_a descrued_a honour_n and_o the_o most_o high_o respect_v commendation_n unto_o my_o sovereign_a lord_n the_o king_n most_o due_a to_o his_o grace_n for_o this_o his_o confession_n which_o also_o out_o of_o a_o true_a subject_n love_n and_o loyalty_n towards_o his_o prince_n i_o can_v sincere_o wish_v may_v never_o by_o any_o the_o least_o cloud_n of_o error_n in_o his_o royal_a understanding_n be_v eclipse_v or_o obscure_v and_o second_o for_o that_o i_o trust_v my_o former_a brethren_n of_o the_o protestanticall_a church_n of_o england_n will_v either_o now_o at_o last_o stand_v to_o their_o ground_n of_o creed_n counsel_n father_n scripture_n voluntary_o choose_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o head_n of_o their_o church_n that_o hitherto_o upon_o my_o knowledge_n will_v never_o be_v confine_v within_o the_o list_n and_o limyt_n of_o any_o even_a trial_n or_o else_o that_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n will_v easy_o out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o his_o judicious_a understanding_n unmask_v and_o discover_v these_o man_n for_o such_o as_o they_o be_v even_o wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n false_a ghospeller_n antichrist_n deceaver_n seducer_n impostor_n and_o now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o word_n themselves_o as_o they_o be_v substantial_o couch_v together_o in_o his_o majesty_n book_n of_o premonition_n they_o be_v lay_v down_o as_o follow_v 2._o and_o now_o for_o the_o point_n of_o heretic_n i_o will_v never_o say_v he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o render_v a_o account_n of_o my_o profession_n and_o that_o hope_v that_o be_v in_o i_o as_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v i_o be_o such_o a_o catholic_n christian_n as_o believe_v the_o three_o creed_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o of_o the_o 3●_n council_n of_o nyce_n and_o that_o of_o athanasius_n the_o two_o late_a being_n paraphrase_n to_o the_o former_a and_o i_o believe_v they_o in_o that_o sense_n as_o the_o ancient-fathers_n and_o counsel_n that_o make_v they_o do_v understand_v they_o to_o which_o three_o creed_n all_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n do_v subscribe_v at_o their_o ordination_n and_o i_o also_o acknowledge_v for_o orthodoxal_a those_o other_o offer_n form_n of_o creed_n that_o either_o be_v devise_v by_o counsel_n or_o particular_a father_n against_o such_o particular_a heresy_n as_o most_o reign_v in_o their_o time_n hitherto_o extend_v the_o word_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o honourable_o than_o this_o this_o form_n of_o confession_n punctual_o and_o so_o substantial_o deliver_v by_o his_o highness_n i_o can_v never_o sufficient_o commend_v for_o that_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o savour_v of_o any_o spice_n of_o heresy_n as_o that_o here_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o true_a catholic_a divinity_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o require_v for_o more_o full_a supplement_n of_o a_o catholic_a christian_a man_n confession_n then_o to_o believe_v the_o three_o creed_n in_o the_o very_a self_n same_o sense_n as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n ancient_a father_n and_o general_a counsel_n do_v understand_v they_o and_o now_o if_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n that_o do_v subscribe_v unto_o they_o in_o their_o ordination_n will_v keep_v and_o confine_v themselves_o within_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o ancient_a christian_a church_n do_v both_o constant_o and_o religious_o hold_v and_o will_v not_o of_o their_o own_o fancy_n presume_v to_o add_v any_o other_o new_a gloss_n or_o private_a interpretation_n of_o their_o own_o brain_n the_o world_n shall_v never_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v such_o breach_n and_o tumult_n such_o uproar_n and_o outcry_n such_o inundation_n and_o innovation_n and_o all_o about_o religion_n as_o now_o there_o be_v 3._o but_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o s._n augustine_n affirm_v quòd_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la integra_fw-la quis_fw-la teneat_fw-la verba_fw-la symboli_fw-la &_o tamen_fw-la non_fw-la rectè_fw-la credat_fw-la 15._o de_fw-la omnibus_fw-la symboli_fw-la articulis_fw-la a_o man_n may_v hold_v and_o profess_v all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n he_o mean_v the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o yet_o not_o have_v a_o true_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o say_a creed_n nay_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la go_v yet_o further_o say_v sub_fw-la ipsis_fw-la paucis_fw-la verbis_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la constitutis_fw-la plerique_fw-la haeretici_fw-la venena_fw-la sua_fw-la occultare_fw-la conati_fw-la sunt_fw-la most_o part_n of_o heretic_n have_v go_v about_o and_o endeavour_v under_o these_o few_o word_n of_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n to_o cover_v their_o poison_a heresy_n so_o as_o the_o believe_a of_o these_o creed_n in_o general_n they_o contain_v but_o capita_n credendorum_fw-la universal_a head_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o christian_n catholic_n except_o also_o we_o give_v our_o firm_a assent_n unto_o all_o the_o particular_n that_o necessary_o may_v be_v reduce_v or_o deduce_v from_o those_o general_a head_n for_o better_a explication_n whereof_o i_o have_v think_v it_o convenient_a in_o this_o place_n to_o address_v certain_a consideration_n that_o here_o ensue_v the_o first_o consideration_n as_o the_o skilful_a and_o careful_a physician_n employ_v no_o less_o industry_n spare_v neither_o counsel_n in_o physic_n reverence_v nor_o prescription_n in_o diet_n for_o the_o conserve_n and_o continue_v of_o the_o bodily_a health_n of_o his_o patient_n until_o he_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o former_a health_n and_o full_a strength_n than_o he_o do_v bestow_v pain_n and_o travail_v in_o recover_v he_o of_o his_o infirmity_n and_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o bed_n of_o his_o malady_n even_o so_o the_o apostle_n as_o so_o many_o sovereign_a soul_n best_a physician_n most_o painful_o and_o diligent_o watch_v over_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n their_o sick_a patient_n to_o uphould_v and_o continue_v they_o in_o christian_a piety_n and_o catholic_a verity_n as_o well_o as_o they_o have_v cure_v they_o of_o their_o spiritual_a leprosy_n and_o raise_v their_o soul_n which_o have_v long_o lie_v sick_a upon_o the_o bed_n creed_n of_o heathenish_a infidelity_n and_o all_o that_o they_o may_v recover_v full_a strength_n in_o save_v and_o believe_v faith_n and_o grow_v to_o be_v perfect_a and_o whole_a man_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o here_o you_o have_v the_o occasion_n motive_n drift_n reason_n &_o intention_n of_o christ_n holy_a apostle_n in_o compile_v the_o perfect_a platform_n of_o wholesome_a faith_n and_o christian_a belief_n i_o mean_v this_o methodical_a and_o apostolical_a form_n of_o creed_n which_o involu_v in_o it_o either_o explicit_a or_o implicit_a in_o plain_a word_n or_o necessary_a supply_n whatsoever_o belong_v to_o the_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o say_v s._n
augustine_n sancti_fw-la apostoli_fw-la certam_fw-la regulam_fw-la fidei_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la quam_fw-la secundum_fw-la numerum_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la temp_n etc._n etc._n the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v deliver_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n which_o rule_n be_v comprehend_v in_o twelve_o sentence_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o 12._o apostle_n be_v call_v by_o they_o by_o a_o greek_a word_n and_o borrow_a metaphor_n symbolum_n a_o symbol_n or_o collation_n of_o many_o thing_n together_o and_o their_o intention_n as_o be_v before_o intimate_v be_v that_o by_o this_o symbol_n sign_n and_o sum_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la veritas_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticae_fw-la pravitatis_fw-la falsitate_fw-la discernatur_fw-la as_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n speak_v of_o his_o golden_a rule_n of_o faith_n deliver_v unto_o he_o from_o all_o his_o ancestor_n that_o haereses_fw-la the_o truth_n of_o catholic_a faith_n and_o verity_n may_v be_v discern_v from_o the_o falsehood_n of_o heretical_a pravity_n this_o have_v our_o ancestor_n leave_v we_o by_o tradition_n and_o for_o the_o first_o in_o stitution_n of_o it_o it_o be_v in_o this_o sort_n as_o the_o history_n of_o antiquity_n the_o very_a life_n of_o memory_n have_v by_o write_v register_v and_o commend_v it_o unto_o us._n 5._o after_o the_o glorious_a visible_a ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o the_o low_a pitch_n and_o vale_n of_o the_o earth_n misery_n into_o the_o high_a top_n of_o heaven_n and_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n eternity_n this_o being_n terminus_fw-la ad_fw-la quem_fw-la aswell_o as_o it_o be_v terminus_fw-la à_fw-la quo_fw-la in_o that_o great_a motion_n of_o heaven_n christ_n incarnation_n and_o man_n redemption_n the_o place_n whither_o he_o ascend_v as_o it_o be_v the_o place_n whence_o he_o descend_v according_a to_o that_o exivi_fw-la à_fw-la patre_fw-la veni_fw-la in_o mundum_fw-la relinquo_fw-la mundum_fw-la vado_fw-la ad_fw-la patrem_fw-la i_o say_v after_o this_o ascension_n &_o descension_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o visible_a shape_n of_o fiery_a tongue_n upon_o the_o apostle_n in_o able_v they_o and_o qualify_a they_o with_o the_o tongue_n of_o nation_n for_o the_o convert_n of_o nation_n than_o the_o apostle_n be_v ready_a to_o separate_v themselves_o and_o to_o depart_v into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n they_o do_v compose_v and_o lay_v down_o a_o perfect_a platform_n of_o their_o future_a preach_n and_o other_o believe_v by_o devise_v a_o certain_a square_a rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o for_o their_o own_o direction_n be_v so_o assist_v with_o the_o inward_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o err_v in_o their_o doctrine_n though_o their_o teach_n be_v ever_o to_o be_v conform_v unto_o these_o head_n as_o for_o the_o christian_a church_n instruction_n and_o premonition_n that_o by_o have_v recourse_n unto_o these_o general_a head_n of_o faith_n commend_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o true_a apostle_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o discern_v and_o avoid_v the_o heretical_a doctrine_n of_o all_o false_a disciple_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n be_v assemble_v together_o and_o meet_v as_o it_o be_v the_o second_o time_n in_o council_n be_v each_o of_o they_o several_o replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o of_o they_o joint_o direct_v by_o the_o self_n same_o never-erring_a spirit_n who_o be_v both_o now_o and_o ever_o in_o such_o assembly_n as_o these_o to_o sit_v as_o precedent_n in_o the_o church_n i_o say_v be_v thus_o prepare_v every_o one_o propose_v as_o he_o believe_v and_o all_o be_v put_v together_o in_o the_o upshot_n do_v make_v the_o shot_n or_o symbol_n of_o a_o brief_a yet_o entire_a methodical_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n include_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n either_o to_o be_v preach_v afterwards_o by_o the_o apostle_n or_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o their_o disciple_n and_o this_o sum_n do_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o appoint_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n or_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n unto_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v ad_fw-la directionem_fw-la ad_fw-la distinctionem_fw-la both_o for_o a_o direction_n unto_o that_o which_o they_o be_v to_o preach_v and_o other_o be_v to_o believe_v as_o also_o to_o discern_v and_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o misbelieve_a infidel_n 6._o thus_o s._n augustine_n who_o sense_n i_o have_v keep_v though_o i_o have_v somewhat_o dilate_v upon_o his_o word_n relate_v the_o matter_n which_o before_o he_o have_v be_v record_v by_o ruffinus_n temp_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o this_o creed_n so_o that_o s._n augustine_n borrow_v not_o only_a sense_n but_o the_o self_n same_o word_n also_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v take_v from_o ruffinus_n and_o further_o the_o say_a ruffinus_n do_v add_v another_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n symbol_n beside_o a_o collation_n or_o contribution_n of_o many_o thing_n unto_o creed_n one_o say_v that_o it_o signify_v also_o a_o sign_n or_o badge_n whereby_o one_o sort_n of_o soldier_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o and_o in_o this_o acception_n also_o of_o the_o word_n it_o consort_v well_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n that_o by_o this_o brief_a sum_n of_o doctrine_n as_o by_o a_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n true_a catholic_a christian_n man_n may_v be_v distinguish_v here_o from_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n since_o after_o death_n there_o be_v such_o a_o external_a distinction_n and_o separation_n to_o be_v make_v and_o for_o this_o purpose_n at_o the_o beginning_n this_o creed_n serve_v but_o afterward_o charity_n &_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o christian_a piety_n decay_v and_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n exceed_o multiply_v upon_o the_o earth_n this_o brief_a and_o plain_a sum_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n against_o infernal_a and_o heretical_a subtlety_n for_o that_o as_o s._n augustine_n before_o have_v well_o observe_v sundry_a sort_n of_o heretic_n presume_v to_o shrewd_a their_o heresy_n under_o the_o article_n of_o this_o creed_n pervert_v also_o the_o meaning_n and_o misunderstand_v aswell_o the_o word_n thereof_o as_o the_o sense_n so_o as_o in_o fine_a the_o bare_a and_o outward_a profession_n of_o believe_v this_o creed_n become_v at_o last_o to_o be_v no_o certain_a argument_n of_o prove_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a catholic_a except_o other_o due_a convince_a circumstance_n concur_v as_o we_o have_v before_o show_v of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n themselves_o 7._o furthermore_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v joint_o affirm_v and_o express_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v that_o albeit_o the_o word_n be_v few_o and_o brief_a of_o this_o creed_n yet_o be_v they_o so_o substantial_a punctual_a and_o material_a as_o that_o they_o contain_v the_o full_a and_o entire_a sum_n of_o whatsoever_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o his_o word_n be_v these_o creed_n quicquid_fw-la praefiguratum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o patriarchis_fw-la quicquid_fw-la denunciatum_fw-la in_o scripture_n quicquid_fw-la praedictum_fw-la in_o prophetis_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la ingeni●o_fw-la vel_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la nato_fw-la etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o be_v prefigure_v in_o the_o patriarch_n whatsoever_o be_v denounce_v in_o the_o scripture_n whatsoever_o be_v foretell_v in_o the_o prophet_n either_o of_o god_n the_o father_n unbegotten_a or_o of_o god_n the_o son_n beget_v or_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o of_o receyve_v any_o sacrament_n or_o of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o resurrection_n all_o this_o be_v brief_o contain_v in_o this_o creed_n so_o that_o the_o observation_n hence_o deduce_v must_v needs_o be_v this_o that_o albeit_o in_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o the_o creed_n many_o thing_n belong_v to_o faith_n be_v not_o literal_a and_o syllabical_o express_v yet_o be_v they_o imply_v comprehend_v and_o intend_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o namely_o and_o particular_o about_o the_o admit_v of_o sacrament_n of_o their_o nature_n number_n necessity_n efficacy_n manner_n of_o administration_n and_o the_o like_a as_o s._n augustine_n do_v here_o expound_v which_o yet_o in_o the_o word_n be_v not_o express_v but_o be_v lock_v up_o with_o in_o the_o sacred_a breast_n and_o closet_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o safe_a treasury_n there_o to_o be_v expound_v dilate_a amplify_v more_o large_o and_o particular_o unto_o the_o faithful_a as_o either_o the_o church_n necessity_n require_v or_o heretical_a pertinacy_n and_o importunity_n oppugn_v shall_v at_o any_o time_n or_o occasion_n require_v which_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o sound_a commentary_n upon_o the_o creed_n he_o that_o in_o all_o humility_n of_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n submit_v not_o himself_o to_o believe_v &_o obey_v can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o believe_v this_o creed_n notwithstanding_o
he_o shall_v protest_v &_o confess_v open_o ten_o thousand_o time_n that_o he_o admit_v all_o the_o word_n and_o every_o syllable_n thereof_o 8._o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v most_o worthy_a of_o a_o christian_a man_n his_o observation_n especial_o if_o he_o have_v either_o care_n or_o make_v any_o conscience_n to_o preserve_v himself_o believe_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o thereby_o to_o save_v his_o soul_n that_o albeit_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v with_o uniform_a verdict_n affirm_v that_o these_o article_n of_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n replenish_v and_o direct_v with_o no_o small_a measure_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o now_o have_v be_v observe_v i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o discuss_v at_o this_o present_a whether_o every_o several_a article_n of_o the_o twelve_o which_o it_o contain_v be_v set_v dowue_a by_o several_a apostle_n though_o diverse_a grave_n and_o ancient_a father_n do_v affirm_v it_o yet_o be_v these_o article_n never_o hold_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n no_o nor_o yet_o be_v they_o at_o this_o day_n either_o by_o catholic_a or_o protestant_n and_o if_o any_o man_n reply_n that_o they_o be_v consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o may_v be_v thence_o deduce_v i_o deny_v not_o that_o only_o i_o say_v this_o be_v nothing_o to_o argue_v that_o authority_n that_o they_o have_v obtain_v in_o the_o church_n since_o that_o all_o other_o write_n of_o orthodox_a man_n be_v both_o consonant_n unto_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v deduce_v from_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o that_o esteem_n as_o the_o creed_n but_o my_o consequence_n that_o hereupon_o i_o infer_v be_v this_o that_o something_o must_v be_v grant_v of_o necessity_n beside_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o have_v be_v necessary_o believe_v in_o the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o by_o tradition_n only_o without_o any_o other_o foundaation_n and_o that_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o christian_a religion_n 9_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o former_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n that_o this_o creed_n come_v down_o along_o through_o the_o century_n of_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n and_o ruffinus_n say_v in_o his_o exposition_n of_o this_o creed_n idcirco_fw-la haec_fw-la nonscripta_fw-la font_n chartulis_fw-la atque_fw-la membranis_fw-la symbolum_n etc._n etc._n &_o therefore_o do_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v these_o thing_n not_o write_v in_o paper_n and_o parchment_n but_o to_o be_v retain_v in_o man_n heart_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v certain_a that_o no_o man_n shall_v by_o read_v have_v the_o same_o for_o that_o write_n be_v accustom_v to_o come_v also_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o infidel_n aswell_o as_o christian_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v learn_v the_o same_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o ruffinus_n give_v of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o creed_n 10._o the_o very_a same_o have_v s._n hierome_n his_o word_n be_v clear_a in_o symbolo_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o spei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la say_v he_o non_fw-la scribitur_fw-la in_o chartis_fw-la &_o atramento_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o tabulis_fw-la cordis_fw-la carnalibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o the_o creed_n that_o contain_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v church_n in_o paper_n and_o ink_n but_o in_o the_o fleshly_a table_n of_o our_o heart_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o this_o do_v evident_o convince_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o understand_a man_n that_o these_o article_n of_o the_o apostolic_a creed_n be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n unto_o christian_n and_o the_o church_n be_v put_v in_o trust_n with_o they_o to_o teach_v they_o unto_o her_o child_n before_o that_o any_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v commit_v to_o writing_n and_o that_o many_o thing_n of_o great_a moment_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o expound_v therein_o and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n learning_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n especial_o concern_v sacrament_n which_o be_v not_o express_v and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o s._n augustine_n and_o other_o father_n before_o he_o do_v often_o reiterate_v and_o frequent_o use_v that_o impsove_a kind_n of_o speech_n norum_n fideles_fw-la the_o faithful_a do_v know_v what_o belong_v unto_o these_o matter_n which_o purposely_o they_o do_v not_o reveal_v unto_o the_o ear_n of_o new_a christian_n least_o infidel_n may_v take_v any_o advantage_n thereby_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o my_o conclusion_n of_o this_o must_v of_o necessity_n hold_v correspondence_n with_o that_o former_a conclusion_n touch_v the_o argument_n of_o scripture_n to_o wit_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o never_o so_o open_o &_o plain_o profess_v that_o he_o do_v accept_v admit_v and_o believe_v this_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o refuse_v the_o understanding_n thereof_o expound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v in_o her_o sense_n he_o believe_v it_o not_o at_o all_o to_o salvation_n neither_o shall_v it_o avail_v he_o any_o more_o to_o admit_v the_o word_n and_o not_o receive_v the_o sense_n then_o if_o at_o once_o and_o altogether_o he_o reject_v both_o word_n and_o sense_n 11._o and_o here_o may_v some_o demand_n but_o where_o now_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a to_o find_v this_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n esspecial_o find_v in_o these_o distract_a time_n of_o schism_n when_o so_o many_o several_a sect_n plead_v for_o the_o church_n cry_v out_o according_a to_o christ_n his_o prophetical_a prediction_n here_o be_v christ_n and_o there_o be_v christ_n here_o be_v the_o church_n &_o there_o be_v the_o pure_a chospell_n here_o be_v the_o word_n true_o preach_v &_o there_o be_v the_o sacrament_n sincere_o administer_v &_o c_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v we_o shall_v easy_o come_v by_o this_o orthodox_a exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n if_o we_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v from_o age_n to_o age_n even_o until_o our_o time_n throughout_o every_o century_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a unless_o it_o be_v unto_o such_o as_o be_v blind_a as_o s._n augustine_n have_v already_o observe_v 12._o s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o time_n remit_v we_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o supreme_a pastor_n whereof_o be_v than_o siricius_n for_o our_o direction_n herein_o credatur_fw-la symbolum_n apostolorum_fw-la say_v he_o quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la rome_n ana_fw-la intemeratum_fw-la semper_fw-la custodit_fw-la &_o seruat_fw-la let_v faith_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v ever_o keep_v and_o preserve_v inviolated_a &_o yet_o be_v this_o upon_o the_o very_a point_n of_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n his_o ascension_n so_o as_o in_o that_o time_n and_o in_o this_o great_a saint_n and_o doctor_n judgement_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o the_o best_a and_o sure_a direction_n to_o know_v the_o true_a content_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o apostolic_a creed_n and_o consequent_o if_o our_o english_a ministry_n who_o at_o their_o ordination_n do_v subscribe_v unto_o this_o creed_n will_v follow_v also_o the_o same_o direction_n for_o the_o true_a understanding_n and_o sense_n thereof_o all_o matter_n will_v quick_o be_v reconcile_v &_o controversy_n accord_v but_o in_o default_n of_o this_o and_o for_o that_o pride_n and_o self_n will_v have_v so_o be_v witch_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o that_o they_o can_v in_o humility_n stoop_v down_o their_o private_a censure_n unto_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o great_a discord_n and_o difference_n that_o now_o be_v reign_v betwixt_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n and_o among_o protestant_n themselves_o concern_v the_o exposition_n thereof_o and_o this_o shall_v appear_v in_o part_n in_o the_o next_o ensue_a consideration_n of_o this_o chapter_n but_o yet_o before_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o other_o consideration_n we_o shall_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o the_o other_o creed_n mention_v here_o by_o his_o majesty_n 13._o the_o other_o creed_n then_o be_v the_o nieene_n conclude_v gratian._n as_o s._n ambrose_n note_v with_o the_o suffrage_n of_o 318._o renown_a father_n allude_v to_o the_o just_a number_n of_o abraham_n soldier_n when_o he_o rescue_v lot_n and_o of_o s._n athanasius_n and_o these_o be_v write_v upon_o occasion_n of_o heresy_n afterward_o arise_v and_o impugn_v some_o fundamental_a point_n &_o consequent_o athanasius_n be_v but_o explication_n of_o the_o former_a as_o his_o majesty_n do_v learned_o and_o excellent_o observe_v and_o therefore_o these_o do_v principal_o depend_v thereon_o this_o be_v evident_a if_o we_o reflect_v a_o little_a upon_o the_o principal_a subject_n of_o the_o 2._o
point_n thereof_o not_o only_o of_o those_o article_n which_o he_o there_o set_v down_o principal_o against_o the_o arian_n and_o other_o heresy_n as_o do_v also_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o that_o otherways_o some_o man_n may_v object_v and_o say_v that_o the_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n the_o commumon_a of_o saint_n which_o s._n athanasius_n mention_v not_o be_v no_o article_n of_o belief_n and_o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o the_o faith_n thereof_o especial_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o say_a article_n with_o the_o other_o three_o next_o ensue_v to_o wit_n i_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o life_n everlasting_a together_o with_o the_o five_o article_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n all_o which_o be_v permit_v by_o the_o nicen_n creed_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v a_o heathenish_a absurdity_n to_o imagine_v 18._o s._n athanasius_n then_o as_o also_o that_o ancient_a orthodox_a council_n of_o nice_a albeit_o they_o set_v down_o and_o expound_v those_o article_n in_o their_o creed_n which_o the_o church_n necessity_n instant_o require_v to_o be_v explayn_v in_o those_o time_n against_o the_o heresy_n which_o then_o most_o infest_a and_o trouble_v the_o church_n yet_o be_v they_o joint_o ever_o of_o this_o opinion_n and_o belief_n that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v all_o and_o every_o point_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o firmiter_fw-la fideliterque_fw-la that_o be_v both_o firm_o and_o faithful_o as_o s._n athanasius_n his_o word_n be_v shall_v most_o certain_o be_v damn_v everlasting_o and_o conform_v unto_o this_o i_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n the_o uniform_a consent_a severity_n of_o all_o antiquity_n that_o any_o the_o least_o heresy_n or_o error_n defend_v obstinate_o and_o with_o pertinacity_n against_o the_o church_n be_v it_o but_o one_o sentence_n word_n fillable_n nay_o letter_n be_v sufficient_a to_o cast_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n into_o heretical_a pravity_n and_o diabolical_a novelty_n and_o consequent_o to_o bring_v a_o man_n unto_o everlasting_a perdition_n and_o destruction_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o this_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v by_o the_o unanime_fw-la verdict_n of_o s._n athanasius_n s._n basill_n s._n nazianzen_n s._n hierome_n s._n augustine_n and_o other_o which_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o very_a close_a period_n of_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n direct_v to_o quodvult_a deus_n pronounce_v bold_o and_o denounce_v confident_o against_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n that_o whosoever_o do_v hold_v any_o one_o of_o these_o heresy_n register_v in_o that_o book_n of_o he_o or_o any_o other_o that_o shall_v spring_v up_o afterwards_o he_o can_v be_v a_o catholic_a christian_a and_o consequent_o can_v be_v save_v for_o that_o he_o hould_v not_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n entire_o and_o inviolable_o 19_o and_o now_o to_o descend_v from_o the_o general_a to_o the_o heresy_n special_a and_o to_o make_v just_a proof_n of_o all_o the_o former_a accusation_n and_o imputation_n lay_v upon_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n first_o the_o minister_n of_o that_o church_n do_v stiff_o hold_v sundry_a of_o those_o heresy_n which_o s._n augustine_n have_v record_v for_o heresy_n and_o as_o condemn_v of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n in_o that_o book_n of_o his_o before_o cite_v 20._o and_o for_o example_n it_o can_v be_v gainsay_v but_o they_o deny_v all_o external_a sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a with_o the_o heretic_n aerius_n this_o be_v one_o heresy_n and_o a_o capital_a one_o too_o if_o we_o do_v believe_v s._n augustine_n second_o the_o protestant_n fall_v into_o another_o heresy_n of_o aerius_n for_o they_o deny_v statue_n solenniter_fw-la celebranda_fw-la esse_fw-la ieiunia_fw-la sed_fw-la cum_fw-la cuique_fw-la voluerit_fw-la ieiunandum_fw-la ne_fw-la videatur_fw-la esse_fw-la sub_fw-la lege_fw-la that_o solemn_a fast_n appoint_v by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v but_o that_o every_o man_n shall_v fast_v when_o he_o will_v lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v under_o the_o law_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n out_o of_o epiphanius_n and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o very_a speech_n of_o our_o minister_n &_o preacher_n of_o england_n at_o this_o day_n nay_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o of_o they_o myself_o proceed_v so_o earnest_o in_o their_o rail_a humour_n against_o this_o sacred_a and_o angelical_a abstinence_n that_o they_o have_v not_o stick_v to_o condemn_v the_o holy_a time_n of_o lent_n as_o popish_a and_o superstitious_a tend_v quite_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o man_n health_n and_o bodily_a constitution_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o author_n thereof_o say_v they_o want_v wisdom_n and_o discretion_n for_o institute_v it_o in_o such_o a_o time_n of_o the_o year_n as_o the_o spring_n be_v when_o man_n his_o body_n require_v the_o best_a and_o pure_a nutriment_n 20._o three_o there_o be_v also_o record_v by_o s._n augustine_n haeres_fw-la 69._o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n that_o affirm_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v whole_o corrupt_v and_o perish_v except_o only_o among_o their_o follower_n and_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n to_o avoid_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n utter_v the_o same_o contumelious_a slander_n at_o this_o day_n condemn_v all_o other_o to_o justify_v themselves_o 21._o again_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n fall_v into_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o jovinianist_n as_o it_o be_v register_v by_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n haeres_fw-la 88_o that_o hold_v the_o equality_n of_o sin_n and_o do_v equal_a marriage_n with_o virginity_n and_o thereupon_o be_v the_o cause_n protestant_n say_v s._n augustine_n that_o diverse_a sacred_a virgin_n consecrate_v to_o god_n by_o the_o holy_a and_o lawful_a vow_n of_o sacred_a single_a life_n leave_v their_o profession_n and_o marry_v and_o be_v not_o this_o also_o practise_v and_o defend_v by_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n do_v they_o not_o deny_v all_o evangelicall_a counsel_n of_o perfection_n delude_v scripture_n and_o reject_v father_n though_o never_o so_o many_o never_o so_o pregnant_a for_o prove_v and_o convince_a of_o this_o witness_v a_o treatise_n late_o publish_v by_o a_o former_a liech_n minister_n of_o your_o church_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o evangelicall_a counsel_n not_o long_o since_o preach_v by_o he_o in_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n 22._o i_o pretermit_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o manichee_n that_o deny_v freewill_n and_o of_o the_o novatian_n who_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o priest_n have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o remit_v sin_n all_o which_o ancient_a heresy_n with_o many_o more_o which_o i_o purposely_o omit_v be_v hold_v in_o like_a manner_n in_o some_o degree_n or_o other_o yea_o defend_v with_o great_a resolution_n by_o our_o english_a minister_n they_o can_v be_v account_v to_o believe_v entire_o and_o inviolable_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o creed_n which_o condemn_v all_o these_o for_o heresy_n 23._o and_o furthermore_o if_o beside_o this_o we_o will_v but_o consider_v the_o variety_n and_o multiplicity_n of_o other_o new_a sect_n of_o these_o our_o day_n with_o which_o our_o english_a minister_n do_v participate_v and_o make_v open_a profession_n to_o communicate_v as_o with_o their_o brethren_n we_o shall_v discern_v clear_o that_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o hold_v the_o sincere_a integrity_n of_o one_o only_a faith_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o they_o have_v ever_o hitherto_o admit_v for_o brethren_n and_o man_n of_o one_o faith_n the_o lutheran_n for_o example_n who_o express_o condemn_v they_o for_o heretic_n and_o profess_v in_o the_o open_a ear_n of_o the_o world_n themselves_o to_o dissent_v real_o from_o they_o in_o diverse_a weighty_a and_o capital_a point_n as_o touch_v the_o real_a presence_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n justification_n freewill_n the_o law_n the_o gospel_n and_o many_o other_o more_o of_o like_a nature_n as_o by_o their_o own_o book_n and_o write_n do_v appear_v and_o how_o then_o may_v they_o be_v say_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o s._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n which_o pronounce_v damnation_n against_o all_o such_o as_o do_v not_o faithful_o and_o firm_o hold_v the_o whole_a entire_a catholic_a faith_n without_o any_o violation_n in_o any_o one_o article_n at_o all_o and_o so_o let_v we_o pass_v unto_o the_o two_o other_o creed_n to_o wit_n unto_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nyce_n and_o the_o apostlicall_a 24._o in_o the_o nicene_n creed_n for_o the_o better_a and_o further_a explication_n of_o christ_n his_o godhead_n and_o equality_n with_o his_o father_n against_o the_o arian_n heresy_n there_o
this_o suffice_v for_o this_o article_n 40._o let_v we_o now_o a_o little_a cast_v about_o and_o take_v a_o view_n of_o the_o nine_o article_n in_o order_n as_o the_o creed_n natural_o branch_v it_o and_o it_o be_v this_o credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o word_n of_o this_o article_n be_v agree_v upon_o on_o all_o part_n but_o the_o sense_n frame_v catholicam_fw-la thereupon_o and_o believe_v of_o different_a christian_n be_v most_o different_a and_o repugnant_a for_o first_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a &_o true_o catholic_a religion_n do_v according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o ancient_a father_n which_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o their_o faith_n understand_v by_o this_o catholic_a church_n that_o visible_a congregation_n of_o the_o first_o believe_v church_n christian_n gather_v together_o in_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n his_o ascension_n at_o which_o assembly_n the_o holy_a apostle_n themselves_o who_o make_v this_o article_n be_v present_a together_o with_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n and_o woman_n upon_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v enlighten_v they_o and_o inflame_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o further_o establish_v and_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n encourage_v they_o to_o go_v forwards_o manful_o without_o fear_n of_o any_o opposite_a humane_a power_n and_o promise_v they_o that_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n &_o assistance_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v with_o they_o and_o the_o director_n of_o they_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n to_o preserve_v this_o church_n and_o holy_a congregation_n in_o all_o necessity_n and_o extremity_n so_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o damnable_a error_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o 41._o moreover_o the_o say_a catholic_a christian_n do_v ever_o understand_v this_o church_n to_o be_v call_v holy_a in_o respect_n both_o of_o the_o great_a sanctity_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o many_o of_o her_o child_n who_o beside_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n as_o s._n gregory_n speak_v nay_o over_o and_o above_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n as_o s._n basill_n and_o s._n chyrsostome_n joint_o speak_v 5._o shall_v endeavour_v etiam_fw-la praecepta_fw-la legis_fw-la perfectiori_fw-la virtute_fw-la transcendere_fw-la to_o transcend_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n by_o devout_v themselves_o unto_o the_o observation_n of_o christ_n his_o high_a counsel_n of_o evangelicall_a perfection_n 42._o also_o this_o church_n be_v call_v holy_a for_o the_o immediate_a and_o perpetuate_v assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n inspire_v she_o inward_o direct_v she_o outward_o and_o especial_o for_o the_o mean_n of_o sanctification_n convey_v unto_o she_o through_o the_o conduct_n of_o her_o sacrament_n as_o chief_a and_o most_o holy_a instrument_n to_o that_o effect_n confer_v grace_n for_o our_o assistance_n in_o the_o perform_n of_o all_o good_a work_n whereof_o none_o can_v be_v partaker_n to_o salvation_n out_o of_o this_o church_n 43._o this_o church_n be_v also_o call_v catholic_a for_o the_o reason_n before_o set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o first_o consideration_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n and_o so_o have_v hitherto_o continue_v still_o and_o ever_o shall_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o further_o it_o have_v these_o sign_n and_o mark_n to_o be_v know_v by_o and_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o heretical_a congregation_n whatsoever_o to_o wit_n antiquity_n universality_n union_n and_o succession_n by_o descent_n of_o bishop_n and_o final_o for_o full_a complement_n it_o have_v that_o communion_n of_o saint_n both_o by_o union_n in_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o sacrament_n which_o no_o other_o schismatical_a conventicle_n or_o heretical_a congregation_n have_v and_o out_o of_o this_o communion_n there_o can_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o life_n or_o salvation_n 32._o all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o which_o here_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o omit_v do_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a religion_n understand_v by_o this_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o it_o will_v require_v a_o whole_a volume_n to_o set_v down_o the_o several_a sentence_n discourse_n and_o authority_n of_o ancient_a father_n that_o joint_o concur_v in_o this_o exposition_n and_o explanation_n 44._o but_o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o the_o state_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o article_n howsoever_o they_o do_v admit_v the_o same_o in_o word_n yea_o and_o subscribe_v thereunto_o in_o their_o ordination_n for_o that_o they_o teach_v their_o rligion_n to_o follow_v their_o state_n as_o their_o state_n bring_v in_o their_o religion_n yet_o exceed_o great_a be_v the_o difference_n and_o large_a be_v their_o conscience_n in_o understand_v the_o same_o as_o may_v appear_v in_o part_n out_o of_o the_o 19_o article_n publish_v by_o m._n rogers_n as_o agree_v upon_o by_o our_o english_a bishop_n concern_v the_o church_n about_o which_o he_o have_v seven_o several_a proposition_n first_o agree_v in_o some_o of_o they_o somewhat_o with_o the_o catholic_n and_o they_o have_v learn_v it_o from_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o as_o their_o usual_a practice_n be_v and_o then_o make_v their_o own_o choice_n to_o dissent_v and_o disagree_v at_o their_o pleasure_n as_o the_o enure_v custom_n of_o all_o heretic_n have_v ever_o be_v 45._o his_o first_o proposition_n than_o be_v this_o there_o be_v a_o church_n 1._o of_o christ_n not_o only_o invisible_a but_o also_o visible_a whereto_o suppose_v he_o to_o understand_v of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o otherwise_o he_o say_v nothing_o we_o do_v also_o agree_v as_o their_o bishop_n church_n in_o like_a manner_n may_v be_v suppose_v to_o do_v and_o yet_o can_v i_o speak_v this_o upon_o my_o own_o knowledge_n that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o common_a know_a tenant_n &_o practice_n of_o their_o academical_a school_n for_o there_o the_o question_n be_v among_o the_o most_o forward_a protestant_n a_o ecclesia_fw-la sit_fw-la invisibilis_fw-la whether_o the_o true_a church_n be_v invisible_a and_o yet_o be_v hold_v affirmitive_o to_o wit_n 86._o that_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o not_o visible_a to_o mansey_n for_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n tend_v to_o flat_a popery_n which_o they_o can_v endure_v 46._o his_o second_o proposition_n be_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n 2._o which_o we_o affirm_v also_o and_o they_o from_o we_o have_v learn_v so_o to_o speak_v and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o the_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o other_o sectary_n lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n can_v make_v one_o church_n they_o differ_v so_o fundamental_o among_o themselves_o and_o in_o such_o weighty_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n as_o they_o do_v 47._o his_o three_o assertion_n be_v the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_n church_n 3._o m._n rogers_n will_v have_v say_v or_o at_o least_o wise_a shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a be_v a_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o all_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o catholic_a but_o all_o catholic_n church_n be_v visible_a and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o his_o incongruity_n of_o speech_n i_o do_v not_o see_v unless_o he_o mean_v thereby_o to_o steal_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a unto_o every_o visible_a congregation_n of_o sectary_n which_o be_v clear_o overthrow_v by_o the_o definition_n and_o large_a explication_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n 48._o his_o four_o proposition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v and_o 4._o for_o time_n be_v before_o the_o church_n which_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n or_o write_v word_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o purpose_n it_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o senseless_a &_o gross_a absurdity_n for_o thereupon_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o before_o moses_n time_n the_o first_o writer_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o be_v more_o than_o two_o thousand_o year_n after_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n god_n have_v no_o church_n because_o there_o be_v extant_a no_o write_v word_n or_o scripture_n which_o be_v very_o ridiculous_a to_o affirm_v but_o the_o only_a refuge_n that_o i_o can_v possible_o perceive_v that_o m._n rogers_n have_v leave_v he_o to_o make_v good_a his_o four_o assertion_n in_o prove_v the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o church_n be_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o unwritten_a word_n but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n neither_o since_o we_o have_v only_o in_o this_o place_n to_o do_v with_o the_o literal_a or_o write_v word_n of_o god_n begin_v
think_v you_o 54._o but_o now_o last_o let_v we_o come_v to_o his_o seven_o and_o last_o exposition_n upon_o this_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o have_v most_o shameful_o err_v in_o life_n ceremony_n and_o matter_n of_o say_v this_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v according_a 96._o as_o he_o undertake_v in_o other_o article_n from_o the_o warrant_n of_o divine_a writ_n but_o here_o he_o leave_v god_n word_n and_o run_v to_o poet_n that_o say_v roma_fw-it mare_n etc._n etc._n rome_n love_v boy_n as_o who_o will_v say_v that_o this_o horrible_a and_o execrable_a sin_n if_o it_o be_v or_o have_v be_v in_o rome_n be_v not_o also_o in_o other_o city_n of_o the_o world_n or_o as_o if_o this_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v his_o purpose_n if_o he_o can_v show_v that_o there_o be_v many_o lewd_a liver_n in_o rome_n the_o thing_n he_o ought_v to_o prove_v be_v this_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n acknowledge_v rome_n for_o the_o chief_a head_n and_o member_n thereof_o have_v err_v from_o her_o public_a decree_n set_v forth_o to_o be_v deliver_v throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n either_o for_o position_n of_o faith_n or_o direction_n of_o manner_n for_o this_o only_o be_v the_o point_n in_o controversy_n and_o not_o whether_o any_o man_n have_v live_v loose_o in_o rome_n or_o any_o pope_n have_v be_v naughty_a man_n or_o may_v be_v hereafter_o so_o as_o for_o the_o point_n controvert_v he_o bring_v not_o one_o word_n of_o proof_n and_o all_o that_o he_o have_v scrape_v together_o of_o spiteful_a slander_n &_o contumelious_a reproach_n against_o diverse_a pope_n and_o other_o prelate_n of_o that_o city_n as_o in_o consequence_n of_o argument_n they_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n nor_o can_v make_v any_o inference_n at_o all_o against_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n so_o be_v they_o in_o fact_n prove_v by_o diverse_a catholic_a author_n to_o be_v shameful_a lie_n contrary_a to_o the_o testimony_n 15._o of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o authentical_a author_n that_o have_v write_v whereof_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v effectual_a proof_n in_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o that_o do_v answer_v those_o slander_n against_o rome_n 55._o now_o than_o we_o see_v how_o out_o of_o this_o one_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o all_o part_n do_v admit_v what_o different_a doctrine_n there_o be_v draw_v by_o different_a exposition_n and_o i_o may_v show_v the_o same_o in_o sundry_a other_o article_n as_o namely_o in_o that_o which_o ensue_v immediate_o after_o credo_fw-la remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la i_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o article_n those_o of_o the_o roman_a faith_n do_v understand_v according_o as_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v and_o this_o be_v not_o only_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o our_o saviour_n his_o passion_n and_o grace_n thereby_o merit_v to_o this_o effect_n but_o also_o of_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n leave_v by_o our_o say_a saviour_n in_o the_o church_n for_o ordinary_a remission_n of_o sin_n and_o namely_o by_o faith_n and_o baptism_n for_o such_o as_o enter_v first_o into_o the_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o penance_n which_o be_v according_a as_o ancient_a father_n do_v call_v it_o secunda_fw-la tabula_fw-la post_fw-la nausragium_fw-la the_o second_o table_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o baptism_n ship_n wrack_n for_o such_o as_o sin_v after_o baptism_n and_o other_o sacrament_n all_o which_o sacrament_n &_o other_o mean_n to_o this_o effect_n do_v work_v their_o effect_n in_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o say_a passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n so_o hould_v the_o catholic_a but_o the_o protestant_n that_o come_v forth_o with_o a_o not_o imputation_n say_v that_o this_o remission_n of_o sin_n consist_v only_o in_o this_o that_o they_o be_v not_o impute_v and_o consequent_o draw_v a_o far_a other_o sense_n upon_o this_o article_n so_o as_o i_o must_v perforce_o conclude_v with_o that_o which_o often_o have_v be_v say_v and_o repeat_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o admit_v these_o creed_n in_o word_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n be_v say_v to_o do_v in_o their_o ordination_n but_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n be_v especial_o to_o be_v stand_v upon_o which_o meaning_n be_v far_o dissonant_n from_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o know_v catholic_a church_n as_o late_o we_o have_v show_v their_o oral_a and_o verbal_a admission_n of_o the_o say_a creed_n can_v be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o christian_n catholic_n or_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o imputation_n of_o be_v heretic_n for_o that_o this_o very_a choice_n and_o election_n which_o they_o do_v make_v of_o particular_a sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o article_n of_o these_o creed_n opposite_a unto_o our_o former_a rule_n and_o consideration_n before_o set_v down_o at_o large_a proper_o and_o effectual_o convince_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n indeed_o and_o so_o much_o of_o this_o matter_n for_o the_o present_a the_o four_o chapter_n concern_v the_o approbation_n and_o allowance_n of_o the_o four_o general_n counsel_n which_o be_v the_o three_o general_a head_n of_o trial_n offer_v and_o propose_v by_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n of_o england_n as_o in_o the_o former_a two_o ground_n of_o believe_v canonical_a scripture_n &_o admit_v the_o three_o usual_a creed_n and_o that_o only_a upon_o the_o church_n public_a tradition_n his_o majesty_n have_v give_v forth_o a_o declaration_n unto_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o his_o confident_a persuasion_n of_o be_v a_o christian_n catholic_n and_o no_o heretic_n even_o so_o in_o this_o three_o general_a head_n i_o mean_v in_o the_o admit_v and_o receyve_v of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n his_o royal_a grace_n have_v not_o only_o continue_v and_o persevere_v in_o the_o former_a declaration_n of_o his_o good_a intention_n and_o persuasion_n but_o have_v further_o and_o much_o more_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o as_o appear_z by_o these_o his_o word_n where_o he_o write_v i_o reverence_v and_o admit_v say_v he_o the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n as_o catholic_a and_o orthodox_n and_o the_o say_a general_n counsel_n be_v 35._o acknowledge_v by_o our_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o receive_v for_o orthodox_n by_o our_o church_n in_o which_o word_n though_o i_o must_v ingenuous_o confess_v that_o i_o can_v retain_v the_o least_o scruple_n or_o doubt_v of_o the_o sincerity_n and_o candour_n of_o his_o majesty_n meaning_n but_o that_o according_a to_o his_o noble_a apprehension_n and_o the_o information_n give_v he_o by_o his_o doctor_n he_o do_v indeed_o for_o his_o princely_a part_n and_o person_n reverence_n and_o admit_v the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n and_o will_v be_v ready_a like_o a_o pious_a meaning_n prince_n to_o receive_v all_o the_o particular_a point_n of_o faith_n conclude_v therein_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v discover_v unto_o he_o yet_o since_o this_o parliamentary_a admission_n of_o counsel_n be_v they_o ground_n of_o all_o and_o must_v prove_v the_o admit_v and_o reject_v of_o they_o either_o good_a or_o bad_a on_o the_o church_n of_o england_n behalf_n my_o first_o demand_n shall_v be_v but_o this_o what_o have_v lay_v parliament_n to_o do_v with_o religion_n what_o business_n make_v they_o with_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o church_n who_o design_v unto_o they_o this_o authority_n to_o alter_v chap_v and_o change_v religion_n at_o their_o pleasure_n upon_o what_o ground_n do_v they_o admit_v some_o counsel_n and_o reject_v other_o especial_o have_v exclude_v from_o parlamentall_a suffrage_n all_o their_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n man_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a they_o do_v the_o thing_n remain_v yet_o register_v upon_o authentical_a record_n &_o fresh_a in_o the_o memory_n of_o many_o now_o live_a when_o at_o the_o first_o and_o second_o lie_v parliament_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o the_o late_a queen_n they_o banish_v catholic_n religion_n out_o of_o the_o land_n 2._o but_o suppose_v these_o four_o counsel_n to_o be_v admit_v and_o receive_v if_o we_o consider_v how_o these_o counsel_n indeed_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o our_o act_n of_o parliament_n how_o reverence_v and_o in_o what_o manner_n receive_v for_o catholic_a and_o orthodox_n by_o our_o english_a congregation_n at_o this_o day_n we_o shall_v be_v foe_fw-mi far_o from_o justify_v the_o protestant_n parliamentary_a admission_n of_o these_o counsel_n or_o any_o other_o of_o their_o action_n whatsoever_o though_o never_o so_o outward_o veil_v and_o cover_v with_o a_o colourable_a show_n of_o piety_n as_o that_o in_o counsel_n very_a deed_n we_o shall_v discover_v nought_o else_o throughout_o the_o passage_n of_o their_o whole_a proceed_n but_o fraud_n imposture_n collusion_n dissimulation_n hypocrisy_n and_o heresy_n which_o
psalm_n do_v foresee_v this_o abominable_a and_o detestable_a voice_n of_o some_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o catholic_a visible_a church_n have_v perish_v and_o fall_v into_o apostasy_n a_o speech_n full_a of_o presumption_n and_o falsehood_n sustain_v with_o no_o truth_n enlighten_v with_o no_o wisdom_n season_v with_o no_o salt_n a_o vain_a temerarious_a headlong_o &_o pernicious_a speech_n so_o s._n augustine_n and_o then_o further_o some_o few_o line_n after_o the_o same_o father_n bring_v in_o the_o say_v visible_a church_n of_o his_o age_n to_o expostulate_v with_o those_o furious_a and_o frantic_a donatist_n in_o this_o manner_n quid_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la nescio_fw-la qui_fw-la recedentes_fw-la à_fw-la i_o murmurant_fw-la contra_fw-la i_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la perditi_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o be_v the_o cause_n i_o know_v not_o why_o certain_a people_n that_o go_v forth_o of_o i_o do_v murmur_n against_o i_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o certain_a lose_a fellow_n do_v contend_v and_o say_v that_o i_o be_o perish_v for_o this_o be_v their_o say_n that_o i_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o be_o not_o now_o etc._n etc._n the_o scripture_n say_v they_o have_v be_v fulfil_v for_o that_o all_o nation_n have_v believe_v but_o the_o church_n have_v apostate_v and_o perish_v throughout_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n when_o we_o urge_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o ●0_n consummation_n of_o the_o world_n here_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o the_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o that_o he_o do_v foresee_v that_o they_o the_o faction_n of_o donatus_n shall_v arise_v and_o continue_v the_o true_a church_n upon_o earth_n so._n s._n augustine_n of_o and_o to_o the_o donatist_n and_o sure_o nothing_o can_v occur_v and_o be_v represent_v unto_o our_o understanding_n more_o conform_a and_o answerable_a unto_o the_o sense_n judgement_n voice_n agreement_n and_o speech_n of_o the_o sectary_n of_o these_o our_o time_n concern_v their_o false_a imputation_n and_o most_o unjust_a calumniation_n against_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n 17._o now_o if_o this_o grave_n and_o holy_a father_n s._n augustine_n one_o of_o the_o chief_a pillar_n of_o the_o latyn_a church_n in_o his_o day_n speak_v in_o the_o voice_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o say_v universal_a catholic_a sectary_n church_n in_o his_o age_n do_v so_o grievous_o and_o dreadful_o censure_v this_o speech_n and_o blasphemous_a slander_n of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n so_o trivial_a and_o familiar_a unto_o protestant_n now_o adays_o as_o that_o he_o call_v it_o impudent_a abominable_a detestable_a presumptuous_a false_a foolish_a rash_a temeratious_a and_o pernicious_a as_o you_o have_v hear_v if_o he_o condemn_v even_o to_o the_o lowermost_a pit_n of_o hell_n all_o those_o that_o frequent_a the_o same_o call_z and_o account_v they_o for_o perditos_fw-la lose_v and_o damn_a people_n recedentes_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la apostate_v from_o the_o church_n upon_o a_o false_a surmise_n of_o their_o own_o foolish_a fancy_n suppose_v that_o the_o church_n itself_o have_v apostate_v or_o may_v fall_v into_o apostasy_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o protestant_n that_o do_v the_o same_o and_o stand_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n 18._o but_o here_o it_o may_v be_v perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v reply_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v say_v not_o that_o the_o visible_a church_n can_v apostate_n or_o perish_v but_o that_o it_o have_v not_o so_o do_v and_o fall_v away_o in_o his_o time_n when_o the_o donatist_n do_v false_o impute_v the_o same_o unto_o it_o but_o that_o it_o may_v err_v and_o fall_v away_o from_o truth_n in_o time_n to_o come_v that_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o deny_v 19_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o albeit_o s._n augustine_n totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la do_v not_o say_v in_o so_o many_o word_n the_o church_n in_o time_n to_o come_v may_v not_o apostatate_v yet_o in_o pure_a force_n of_o argument_n and_o true_a substance_n of_o matter_n he_o do_v affirm_v it_o in_o that_o he_o allege_v against_o the_o donatist_n and_o urge_v to_o convince_v they_o the_o very_a promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n make_v unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o in_o their_o person_n unto_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o ecce_fw-la ego_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la sum_fw-la usque_fw-la in_o consummationem_fw-la saeculi_fw-la behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n which_o promise_n hold_v for_o all_o time_n in_o s._n augustine_n his_o judgement_n even_o until_o the_o world_n general_a consummation_n and_o therefore_o the_o same_o father_n in_o another_o place_n write_v upon_o another_o psalm_n have_v first_o show_v how_o the_o church_n be_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n he_o further_o add_v sedfortè_fw-la ista_fw-la civitas_fw-la quae_fw-la mundum_fw-la tenuit_fw-la universum_fw-la aliquando_fw-la evertetur_fw-la absit_fw-la deus_fw-la enim_fw-la fundavit_fw-la eam_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la si_fw-mi ergo_fw-la deus_fw-la fundavit_fw-la 47._o eam_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la quid_fw-la time_n ne_fw-la cadat_fw-la but_o happy_o this_o city_n that_o have_v possess_v the_o whole_a world_n shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v be_v overthrow_v god_n forbid_v for_o god_n have_v found_v the_o same_o for_o ever_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v if_o therefore_o god_n have_v found_v the_o same_o for_o ever_o why_o do_v thou_o fear_v lest_o this_o foundation_n may_v fall_v which_o very_o point_n s._n augustine_n repeat_v again_o in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la and_o the_o five_o chapter_n to_o show_v his_o constant_a and_o unuariable_a resolution_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n 20._o and_o here_o i_o may_v allege_v father_n upon_o father_n greek_n upon_o latin_a and_o produce_v so_o many_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a worthy_n and_o ancient_a father_n as_o may_v suffice_v to_o fill_v a_o large_a volume_n and_o all_o of_o they_o tend_v direct_o to_o apostatate_v this_o effect_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n plant_v by_o our_o saviour_n he_o be_v the_o foundation_n stone_n and_o by_o his_o apostle_n and_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n shall_v never_o perish_v or_o apostatate_n from_o christ_n by_o any_o the_o least_o damnable_a error_n or_o heresy_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n &_o christ_n his_o second_o come_v unto_o judgement_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o they_o do_v all_o of_o they_o allege_v and_o bring_v many_o pregnant_a and_o evident_a place_n of_o scripture_n 21._o as_o for_o example_n these_o two_o here_o urge_v by_o s._n augustine_n as_o also_o that_o plain_a text_n utter_v by_o way_n of_o promise_n unto_o his_o disciple_n matth._n 16._o by_o our_o saviour_n porte_fw-fr inferorum_fw-la non_fw-la praevalebunt_fw-la adversus_fw-la eam_fw-la the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o this_o church_n &_o on_o this_o place_n s._n chrysostome_n dilate_v himself_o much_o as_o be_v by_o occasion_n treat_v upon_o the_o 148._o psalm_n and_o in_o a_o homily_n make_v at_o that_o time_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v expel_v from_o constantinople_n he_o infer_v these_o word_n upon_o that_o place_n quòd_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la credis_fw-la verbo_fw-la &_o rebus_fw-la ipsis_fw-la operibus_fw-la crede_fw-la if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v christ_n word_n the_o thing_n themselves_o here_o speak_v believe_v his_o work_n how_o many_o tyrant_n have_v go_v about_o to_o impugn_v the_o church_n etc._n etc._n where_o be_v they_o that_o go_v about_o these_o thing_n quomodo_fw-la impurissime_fw-la diabole_fw-la ecclesiante_fw-la putas_fw-la posse_fw-la deijcere_fw-la how_o do_v thou_o think_v thou_o most_o impure_a devil_n that_o thou_o can_v overthrow_v the_o church_n etc._n etc._n which_o demand_v this_o bless_a father_n will_v never_o have_v urge_v unto_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n if_o the_o devil_n may_v have_v reply_v that_o in_o time_n to_o come_v he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v it_o by_o sow_v the_o tare_n of_o ignorance_n error_n and_o heresy_n in_o it_o and_o now_o that_o s._n chrysostome_n mean_v of_o the_o external_a visible_a church_n it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a by_o the_o instance_n that_o he_o bring_v of_o the_o horrible_a and_o inhuman_a persecution_n raise_v and_o stir_v up_o by_o infidel_n and_o heretical_a emperor_n against_o the_o same_o most_o holy_a church_n 22._o and_o s._n cyprian_n that_o ancient_a and_o renown_a martyr_n eccles._n treat_v of_o this_o argument_n sound_v forth_o this_o eulogy_n in_o praise_n of_o the_o church_n adulterari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la sponsa_fw-la christi_fw-la incorruptaest_n pudica_fw-la est_fw-la domum_fw-la unam_fw-la novit_fw-la unius_fw-la cubiculi_fw-la sanctitatem_fw-la casto_fw-la pudore_fw-la custodit_fw-la the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v adulterate_v she_o be_v unspotted_a she_o be_v chaste_a she_o know_v one_o house_n she_o keep_v the_o sanctity_n of_o one_o chamber_n one_o bed_n and_o that_o
with_o a_o chaste_a shamefastness_n and_o love_n so_o s._n cyprian_n in_o that_o excellent_a tract_n of_o his_o deunitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la which_o tract_n alone_o though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o very_a short_a one_o yet_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o be_v the_o bane_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o to_o keep_v any_o man_n desirous_a of_o truth_n within_o the_o bosom_n of_o catholic_a unity_n 23._o with_o s._n cyprian_n agree_v s._n hilary_n write_v to_o the_o church_n same_o effect_n in_o express_a word_n affirm_v hoc_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la proprium_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la tum_fw-la uincat_fw-la cum_fw-la laeditur_fw-la tum_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la cum_fw-la arguitur_fw-la tum_fw-la obtmeat_n cum_fw-la deseritur_fw-la this_o be_v peculiar_a unto_o the_o church_n that_o when_o she_o be_v hurt_v by_o persecution_n than_o she_o win_v and_o overcom_v when_o she_o be_v reprehend_v by_o heretic_n then_o be_v she_o perceive_v that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o she_o be_v misconceive_v she_o make_v herself_o in_o her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v better_o understand_v by_o declaration_n of_o matter_n call_v into_o question_n when_o she_o be_v forsake_v either_o by_o rebellious_a child_n that_o go_v out_o from_o she_o or_o by_o god_n permission_n exercise_v she_o by_o tribulation_n then_o do_v she_o obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o glorious_o triumph_v so_o as_o here_o you_o see_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o the_o church_n of_o their_o time_n but_o of_o all_o other_o ensue_a age_n that_o it_o can_v perish_v or_o be_v corrupt_v and_o with_o these_o agree_v s._n ambrose_n say_v haec_fw-la ergo_fw-la navis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la si_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la saeculum_fw-la istud_fw-la tamquam_fw-la aliquod_fw-la pelagus_fw-la sortitur_fw-la insestum_fw-la numquam_fw-la eliditur_fw-la ad_fw-la saxum_fw-la numquam_fw-la mergitur_fw-la adprofundum_fw-la so_o speak_v s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o salomone_n the_o 4._o chapter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o ship_n therefore_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v toss_v upon_o the_o sea_n of_o this_o world_n as_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o albeit_o it_o do_v daily_o find_v and_o feel_v the_o world_n to_o be_v troublesome_a unto_o it_o as_o a_o certain_a tempestuous_a and_o stormy_a sea_n yet_o do_v it_o never_o dash_v and_o split_v in_o piece_n by_o strike_v against_o any_o rock_n nor_o yet_o be_v it_o ever_o dryven_v and_o drown_v to_o the_o bottom_n all_o which_o privilege_n can_v not_o be_v verify_v of_o the_o say_a church_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v become_v a_o harlot_n or_o fall_v away_o from_o christ_n by_o entertain_v any_o damnable_a error_n or_o heresy_n 24._o and_o as_o s._n ambrose_n so_o speak_v s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o isaiah_n his_o word_n be_v these_o super_fw-la petram_fw-la sundatur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nulla_fw-la tempestate_fw-la concutitur_fw-la nullo_fw-la turbine_fw-la ventisque_fw-la subvertitur_fw-la the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o a_o rock_n be_v sh●uered_v with_o no_o tempest_n be_v overwhelm_v and_o overthrow_v by_o no_o fury_n &_o violence_n of_o wind_n whatsoever_o and_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n in_o another_o place_n put_v a_o real_a distinction_n betwixt_o the_o synogogue_n of_o the_o jew_n &_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o especial_o betwixt_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v unto_o both_o assume_v the_o speech_n of_o christ_n and_o speak_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n linquetur_fw-la domus_fw-la vestra_fw-la deserta_fw-la your_o house_n your_o church_n your_o synagogue_n shall_v be_v leave_v desolate_a and_o empty_a unto_o you_o 23._o but_o as_o for_o the_o christian_a church_n say_v he_o aeternam_fw-la habebit_fw-la possessionem_fw-la for_o that_o christ_n promise_v unto_o his_o disciple_n behold_v i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o or_o as_o other_o readins_n have_v it_o i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o same_o speech_n be_v reassume_v and_o reiterated_a by_o he_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o nine_o of_o the_o prophet_n amos_n and_o upon_o the_o 28._o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n 25._o and_o here_o i_o may_v tire_v out_o both_o the_o reader_n and_o myself_o also_o with_o allege_v the_o unamine_fw-la consent_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o their_o day_n can_v never_o perish_v apostatate_n or_o fall_v away_o from_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o regard_n of_o christ_n his_o promise_n make_v unto_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o contrary_a heretical_a tenant_n be_v a_o common_a receive_a doctrine_n in_o the_o protestant_n school_n in_o this_o last_o &_o worst_a age_n of_o the_o world_n for_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n pro_fw-la aris_fw-la &_o focis_fw-la as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o the_o life_n or_o death_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v no_o less_o stiff_o &_o peremptory_o defend_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o hold_v these_o four_o general_a counsel_n which_o be_v admit_v by_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o church_n and_o parliament_n of_o england_n and_o fourteen_o other_o no_o less_o general_n from_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n to_o the_o last_o of_o trent_n this_o church_n say_v i_o descend_v by_o succession_n of_o christian_a people_n and_o by_o lawful_a and_o ecclesiastical_a ordination_n of_o prelate_n pastor_n and_o bishop_n for_o government_n of_o the_o same_o have_v after_o the_o aforesaid_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o little_a &_o little_a say_v the_o protestant_n apostate_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o true_a doctrine_n and_o have_v leave_v their_o room_n and_o place_n for_o protestant_n to_o enter_v and_o supply_v their_o defect_n and_o this_o be_v just_a like_o the_o allegation_n and_o pretence_n of_o the_o donatist_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n and_o no_o marvel_n that_o protestant_n and_o donatist_n thus_o conspire_v against_o the_o true_a church_n for_o sure_o the_o right_a of_o the_o donatist_n be_v as_o good_a to_o lay_v claim_n thereunto_o as_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o aught_o that_o i_o can_v see_v to_o the_o contrary_n and_o let_v this_o suffice_v for_o my_o first_o consideration_n the_o second_o consideration_n my_o second_o consideration_n concern_v this_o present_a subject_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n receive_v by_o the_o protestant_n lay_v parliament_n as_o be_v already_o premise_v council_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o ecclesiastical_a devise_n and_o invention_n of_o call_v general_a counsel_n and_o this_o spiritual_a authority_n in_o erect_v this_o great_a consistory_n and_o supreme_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o decide_n and_o determine_v of_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n that_o may_v possible_o arise_v therein_o either_o by_o the_o friend_n or_o rather_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v come_v peculiar_o and_o proceed_v original_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n partly_o for_o that_o the_o first_o form_n origin_n and_o practice_n thereof_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o you_o shall_v read_v act._n 15._o according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v former_o note_v and_o partly_o and_o especial_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o say_v holy_a ghost_n that_o ever-blessed_n and_o never_o err_a spirit_n of_o truth_n testify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o high_a and_o sovereign_a command_a authority_n use_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o first_o counsel_n decree_v visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o why_o i_o say_v this_o be_v so_o have_v the_o protestant_n in_o our_o day_n have_v now_o almost_o have_v a_o full_a age_n since_o their_o defection_n from_o catholic_a roman_a religion_n never_o as_o yet_o call_v a_o general_a council_n among_o themselves_o to_o repair_v their_o own_o breach_n reconcile_v their_o own_o emnity_n determine_v and_o decide_v their_o own_o controversy_n which_o as_o before_o i_o have_v show_v be_v both_o many_o and_o weighty_a implacable_a and_o irreconciliable_a true_o it_o seem_v unto_o i_o that_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a church_n that_o gather_v these_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n to_o hold_v all_o in_o one_o union_n and_o communion_n nay_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v lead_v or_o rather_o mislead_v with_o a_o contrary_a spirit_n of_o schism_n heresy_n and_o division_n they_o will_v have_v tread_v in_o the_o steep_v of_o these_o ancient_a father_n and_o have_v imitate_v they_o in_o apply_v the_o sovereign_a remedy_n of_o general_a counsel_n for_o cure_v the_o wound_n of_o their_o own_o homebred_a division_n and_o damnable_a dissension_n at_o least_o wise_a they_o will_v without_o fail_n in_o a_o whole_a age_n have_v call_v some_o one_o forasmuch_o as_o
the_o ancient_a church_n gather_v and_o assemble_v four_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o age_n and_o a_o half_a and_o the_o protestant_a prince_n and_o people_n do_v bind_v and_o border_n near_o together_o then_o do_v the_o christian_n in_o former_a time_n which_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n disperse_v here_o and_o there_o far_o and_o near_o over_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n 27._o if_o reply_n be_v make_v that_o then_o there_o be_v but_o one_o emperor_n to_o afford_v his_o imperial_a consent_n for_o the_o assemble_v of_o the_o synod_n &_o now_o since_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n into_o many_o dukedom_n princedom_n kingdom_n and_o free_a state_n there_o be_v many_o particular_a prince_n who_o will_n and_o judgement_n can_v more_o hardly_o be_v agree_v who_o assent_n be_v with_o great_a difficulty_n to_o be_v require_v and_o obtain_v i_o answer_v this_o evasion_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a collusion_n and_o therefore_o must_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o pass_v without_o due_a reprehension_n for_o since_o the_o foresaid_a division_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n into_o several_a kingdom_n and_o state_n many_o general_a council_n have_v be_v call_v and_o gather_v among_o catholic_n as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v yea_o and_o that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o tumult_n uproar_n and_o garboil_n in_o the_o temporal_a estate_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o this_o a_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n may_v comprehend_v &_o imagine_v to_o have_v byna_n great_a let_v and_o impediment_n unto_o the_o gather_n of_o general_n counsel_n than_o any_o encumbrance_n and_o inconvenience_n that_o the_o protestant_n surmise_n or_o pretend_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v heresy_n and_o schism_n original_o ground_v upon_o proper_a election_n themselves_o private_a invention_n stubborn_a selfwill_n and_o proud_a conceit_a judgement_n together_o with_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o church_n authority_n this_o i_o say_v can_v never_o abide_v that_o exact_a discussion_n which_o a_o general_a council_n do_v require_v for_o how_o can_v the_o protestant_n thus_o divide_v as_o they_o be_v and_o know_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o own_o cause_n endure_v parley_n and_o treaty_n either_o with_o the_o catholic_n who_o they_o account_v adversary_n or_o among_o themselves_o with_o their_o own_o sectary_n 28._o not_o with_o catholic_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o example_n of_o ancient_a heretic_n conden_v in_o these_o 4._o first_o general_n counsel_n to_o wit_n the_o arian_n in_o the_o first_o the_o macedonian_n in_o the_o second_o the_o nestorian_n in_o the_o three_o and_o the_o eutichian_o in_o the_o four_o who_o flee_v what_o they_o can_v those_o counsel_n appeal_n only_o to_o scripture_n whereof_o there_o be_v one_o notable_a example_n among_o many_o other_o in_o the_o last_o of_o these_o four_o counsel_n i_o mean_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o the_o archimandrite_n and_o archereticke_n eutiches_n be_v send_v unto_o with_o notary_n from_o this_o grave_n and_o learned_a council_n to_o yield_v a_o account_n to_o the_o council_n of_o his_o heretical_a opinion_n hold_v of_o one_o only_a nature_n in_o christ_n after_o his_o incarnation_n he_o first_o bethink_v he_o of_o this_o evasion_n to_o say_v that_o he_o will_v agree_v and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n that_o have_v sit_v in_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o that_o of_o ephesus_n but_o this_o be_v but_o mere_a collusion_n for_o thereby_o he_o only_o mean_v most_o crafty_o and_o heretical_o to_o evade_v and_o fly_v both_o the_o other_o two_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n that_o have_v already_o deal_v against_o he_o and_o condemn_v he_o as_o also_o this_o of_o chalcedon_n that_o be_v now_o gather_v against_o he_o to_o hear_v his_o cause_n and_o to_o be_v his_o judge_n 29._o but_o yet_o second_o for_o fear_v that_o he_o may_v yield_v also_o to_o far_o in_o this_o he_o add_v present_o a_o exposition_n say_v si_fw-mi verè_fw-la aliquid_fw-la contingat_fw-la eos_fw-la in_o aliquibus_fw-la dictis_fw-la aut_fw-la falli_fw-la aut_fw-la venet._n errasse_fw-la hoc_fw-la neque_fw-la se_fw-la vette_fw-mi reprehendere_fw-la neque_fw-la subscribere_fw-la solas_fw-la autem_fw-la scripturas_fw-la scrutari_fw-la tamquam_fw-la firmiores_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la expositionibus_fw-la if_o not_o withstand_v it_o have_v happen_v that_o the_o say_v father_n of_o the_o nicen_n and_o ephesine_n counsel_n have_v be_v deceive_v and_o err_v in_o many_o of_o their_o say_n than_o will_v he_o neither_o reprehend_v the_o same_o for_o modesty_n sake_n nor_o yet_o subscribe_v thereunto_o but_o that_o he_o for_o his_o part_n will_v attend_v himself_o whole_o unto_o the_o scripture_n alone_o as_o be_v more_o firm_a and_o sure_a than_o the_o exposition_n of_o any_o father_n whatsoever_o and_o be_v not_o this_o speak_v like_o a_o protestant_n 30._o three_o when_o he_o have_v repeat_v and_o urge_v again_o his_o blasphemous_a heresy_n of_o one_o only_a nature_n in_o christ_n in_o presence_n of_o those_o grave_n and_o reverend_a prelate_n that_o be_v protestant_n send_v by_o the_o whole_a synod_n to_o take_v his_o confession_n and_o further_o when_o he_o have_v read_v unto_o they_o a_o book_n compile_v apologetical_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o heresy_n he_o then_o tell_v they_o open_o and_o plain_o that_o this_o be_v his_o faith_n according_a unto_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a assertion_n that_o christ_n consist_v of_o two_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a unite_v in_o one_o person_n he_o say_v flat_o neque_fw-la se_fw-la didicisse_fw-la in_o expositionil_n we_o sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la neque_fw-la subscriberevelle_fw-fr sicontigerit_fw-la ab_fw-la aliquo_fw-la ei_fw-la tale_n aliquid_fw-la legi_fw-la quia_fw-la divina_fw-la scripturae_fw-la meliores_fw-la sunt_fw-la patrum_fw-la doctrinis_fw-la that_o he_o have_v neither_o learn_v any_o such_o assertion_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n he_o mean_v the_o bless_a father_n of_o the_o nicene_n and_o ephesine_n counsel_n nor_o yet_o will_v he_o for_o his_o part_n admit_v and_o embrace_v it_o if_o any_o such_o thing_n shall_v happen_v to_o be_v read_v unto_o he_o out_o of_o their_o write_n and_o his_o reason_n be_v that_o which_o be_v so_o common_o urge_v by_o protestant_n for_o that_o the_o divine_a scripture_n be_v better_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o father_n the_o which_o though_o it_o be_v true_a in_o itself_o yet_o be_v his_o meaning_n to_o deceive_v thereby_o as_o you_o see_v think_v by_o this_o fair_a glosle_n &_o goodly_a pretence_n of_o scripture_n to_o have_v avoid_v and_o escape_v the_o tribunal_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o that_o time_n but_o the_o council_n condemn_v his_o opinion_n and_o person_n notwithstanding_o his_o shift_a evasion_n to_o the_o contrary_n 31._o and_o true_o the_o very_a consideration_n of_o this_o particular_a i_o mean_v the_o conformity_n of_o spirit_n in_o this_o old_a heretic_n and_o diverse_a of_o the_o new_a protestant_n that_o cry_v out_o with_o full_a and_o open_a mouth_n to_o have_v all_o thing_n in_o general_n counsel_n try_v by_o scripture_n alone_o leave_v in_o i_o a_o very_a great_a impression_n and_o the_o matter_n itself_o seem_v unto_o i_o very_o considerable_a and_o worthy_a of_o all_o diligent_a attention_n for_o i_o patticuler_o reflect_v upon_o that_o sentence_n of_o calvin_n wherein_o in_o my_o poor_a judgement_n and_o opinion_n i_o right_o compare_v the_o two_o arch-hereticke_n together_o and_o whether_o i_o wrong_v calvin_n let_v his_o own_o word_n witness_v and_o his_o best_a favourite_n 1●_n and_o sectarir_n defend_v their_o master_n from_o speak_v like_o a_o heretic_n i_o mean_v like_o eutiches_n nulla_fw-la say_v he_o nos_fw-la conciliorunt_fw-la patrum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la nomina_fw-la impedire_fw-la debent_fw-la quo_fw-la minùs_fw-la omnes_fw-la omnium_fw-la spirituum_fw-la ad_fw-la divini_fw-la verbi_fw-la regulam_fw-la exigamus_fw-la &_o verbo_fw-la domini_fw-la examinemus_fw-la num_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la sunt_fw-la we_o be_v not_o to_o pass_v for_o counsel_n father_n bishop_n it_o be_v not_o in_o name_v of_o all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o they_o can_v bar_v we_o from_o examine_v all_o kind_n of_o spirit_n according_a unto_o the_o square_a rule_n of_o god_n word_n and_o we_o may_v call_v they_o unto_o account_n &_o sift_v they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no._n so_o far_o he_o 32._o and_o here_o also_o i_o remember_v that_o i_o have_v see_v the_o condition_n require_v by_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n when_o as_o they_o be_v invite_v to_o come_v unto_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n at_o the_o very_a first_o gather_v thereof_o and_o the_o say_a condition_n be_v publish_v in_o a_o several_a book_n which_o do_v bear_v this_o inscription_n causae_fw-la cur_n electores_fw-la principes_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o cause_n why_o the_o elector_n prince_n and_o other_o addict_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n do_v not_o come_v to_o the_o
council_n of_o trent_n causas_fw-la for_o iustifi_n of_o which_o cause_v eight_o condition_n be_v require_v by_o they_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o that_o council_n whereof_o the_o four_o be_v that_o the_o decision_n be_v make_v in_o all_o controversy_n only_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o not_o out_o of_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n or_o tradition_n the_o five_o be_v that_o decision_n be_v again_o make_v not_o according_a to_o the_o plurality_n of_o voice_n or_o suffrage_n but_o according_a unto_o the_o norm_a and_o rule_v of_o god_n counsel_n word_n but_o what_o this_o norm_a or_o rule_n be_v they_o expound_v not_o but_o do_v leave_v it_o as_o they_o find_v it_o still_o to_o be_v contend_v about_o whereunto_o if_o we_o adjoine_v two_o other_o condition_n of_o they_o which_o be_v the_o last_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o protestant_a minister_n may_v give_v voice_n equal_o with_o bishop_n in_o decide_v of_o all_o question_n &_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v their_o cause_n yet_o not_o only_o their_o person_n shall_v be_v secure_a but_o their_o cause_n also_o not_o to_o be_v conden_v for_o heresy_n these_o i_o say_v if_o we_o add_v as_o the_o late_a unto_o the_o former_a we_o shall_v plain_o discern_v that_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o thought_n to_o stand_v unto_o that_o council_n at_o all_o but_o to_o their_o own_o head_n and_o by_o these_o to_o their_o own_o unreasonable_a condition_n and_o unconscionable_a to_o make_v their_o controversy_n and_o heresy_n endless_a and_o indeterminable_a for_o if_o every_o man_n or_o at_o least_o every_o minister_n have_v authority_n to_o determine_v out_o of_o god_n word_n when_o will_v there_o be_v a_o end_n 33._o and_o here_o you_o see_v the_o small_a or_o rather_o no_o hope_n that_o be_v of_o agreement_n betwixt_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n by_o way_n of_o general_n counsel_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_n reserve_v themselves_o only_a to_o scripture_n for_o the_o decision_n of_o matter_n and_o not_o admit_v general_a counsel_n and_o father_n to_o be_v umpiring_a judge_n of_o the_o sense_n &_o mean_v thereof_o they_o tread_v first_o into_o the_o step_n and_o rake_v into_o the_o sacrilegious_a ash_n of_o all_o former_a ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n even_o for_o this_o very_a point_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n in_o many_o of_o her_o general_a counsel_n and_o second_o by_o such_o condition_n they_o make_v themselves_o sure_a and_o secure_a from_o be_v condemn_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o they_o will_v yield_v thereunto_o and_o the_o self_n same_o fundamental_a reason_n or_o rather_o desperate_a refuge_n and_o evasion_n of_o they_o in_o profane_v and_o abuse_v this_o sacred_a sanctuary_n of_o scripture_n by_o their_o profane_a spirit_n and_o unhallowed_a gloss_n hould_v also_o for_o their_o never_o agree_v among_o themselves_o by_o meeting_n conference_n colloquy_n disputation_n synod_n or_o counsel_n for_o that_o the_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n whether_o zwinglians_n or_o caluinist_n for_o of_o these_o two_o only_o i_o mean_v to_o speak_v at_o this_o time_n stand_v upon_o this_o resolute_a principle_n on_o all_o hand_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v but_o by_o scripture_n and_o then_o each_o one_o interpret_n that_o scripture_n different_o from_o the_o other_o &_o acknowledge_v no_o judge_n on_o neither_o party_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o they_o shall_v ever_o come_v to_o any_o end_n of_o determination_n 34._o and_o this_o will_v evident_o appear_v if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o those_o conventicle_n meeting_n conference_n synod_n counsel_n &_o colloquy_n hold_v betwixt_o these_o reform_a brethren_n for_o the_o space_n of_o threescore_o year_n together_o to_o wit_n from_o the_o year_n 1530._o unto_o the_o year_n 1590._o which_o be_v set_v forth_o &c_n by_o stanislaus_n rescius_fw-la ambassador_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o polonia_n at_o naples_n upon_o the_o year_n 1596._o &_o which_o do_v amount_v to_o above_o threescore_o synod_n &_o counsel_n &_o meeting_n hold_v at_o smalcaldium_n frankesord_n constance_n tygure_n wittemberge_n berna_n ratisbone_n spire_n norimberge_n lipsia_n worm_n luneburge_n maulnbourne_n petricovia_n varadine_n gratz_n brunswick_n dresda_n alba_n julia_n cracovia_n and_o diverse_a other_o place_n all_o these_o and_o many_o more_o if_o we_o look_v into_o with_o a_o indifferent_a eye_n we_o shall_v ever_o find_v meeting_n that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o conclude_v any_o peace_n in_o religion_n or_o reconcile_n of_o their_o controversy_n by_o these_o synod_n and_o counsel_n as_o that_o they_o depart_v far_o great_a enemy_n and_o more_o disagree_v in_o their_o opinion_n then_o when_o they_o first_o meet_v witness_n their_o departure_n at_o one_o meeting_n of_o they_o above_o mention_a when_o they_o will_v neither_o give_v nor_o take_v dextras_fw-la fraternitatis_fw-la nor_o dextras_fw-la humanitatis_fw-la fellowship_n of_o fraternity_n nor_o fellowship_n of_o humanity_n which_o be_v a_o token_n that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o union_n nor_o any_o mean_n leave_v they_o to_o come_v unto_o it_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o example_n and_o precedent_n of_o these_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n that_o determine_v with_o authority_n and_o uniform_a judgement_n the_o controversy_n of_o their_o time_n over_o all_o the_o world_n do_v prejudice_n all_o together_o and_o condemn_v the_o protestant_n of_o our_o age_n and_o do_v convince_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o their_o spirit_n or_o religion_n and_o that_o neither_o general_n national_n provincial_a or_o particular_a counsel_n synod_n etc._n or_o meeting_n can_v bring_v themselves_o to_o any_o concord_n or_o agreement_n together_o especial_o division_n and_o dissension_n be_v a_o note_n as_o it_o be_v ascribe_v by_o all_o ancient_a father_n peculiar_a unto_o heretic_n that_o they_o be_v always_o irreconciliable_a and_o divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o my_o second_o consideration_n the_o three_o consideration_n my_o three_o consideration_n be_v that_o by_o read_v these_o counsel_n i_o do_v not_o only_o find_v a_o complete_a hierarchy_n manner_n and_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o those_o former_a ancient_a time_n consist_v of_o bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n and_o prelate_n govern_v the_o say_a church_n conform_a to_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n of_o our_o day_n and_o whole_o different_a from_o the_o protestant_n church_n which_o they_o call_v reform_v though_o in_o my_o judgement_n they_o may_v more_o true_o be_v call_v deform_v in_o that_o they_o have_v take_v away_o all_o such_o hierarchy_n of_o bishop_n except_o only_o a_o small_a glimpse_n thereof_o reserve_v in_o england_n for_o a_o show_n but_o in_o many_o other_o particular_a point_n also_o i_o plain_o perceive_v their_o sense_n opinion_n and_o judgment_n to_o be_v far_o dissonant_n from_o these_o of_o our_o protestant_n whether_o we_o regard_v their_o practice_n for_o conversation_n and_o reformation_n of_o our_o manner_n or_o respect_v their_o doctrine_n for_o instruction_n and_o information_n of_o our_o judgment_n whereof_o god_n assist_v i_o shall_v lay_v forth_o some_o few_o brief_a and_o punctual_a observation_n purposely_o pretermit_v infinite_a other_o that_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o foresay_a four_o general_a counsel_n 36._o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o four_o i_o mean_v nicen_n and_o the_o 3._o canon_n thereof_o these_o word_n represent_v themselves_o unto_o my_o view_n omnibus_fw-la modis_fw-la interdixit_fw-la sancta_fw-la synodus_fw-la ut_fw-la neque_fw-la episcopo_fw-la neque_fw-la presbytero_fw-la neque_fw-la diacono_fw-la neque_fw-la ulli_fw-la clericorum_fw-la omnino_fw-la licere_fw-la habere_fw-la secum_fw-la mulierem_fw-la extraneam_fw-la nisi_fw-la fortèmater_fw-la aut_fw-la soror_fw-la aut_fw-la avia_fw-la aut_fw-la amita_fw-la vel_fw-la matertera_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o his_o namque_fw-la personis_fw-la &_o harum_fw-la similibus_fw-la omnis_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la mulieribus_fw-la est_fw-la suspitio_fw-la declinatur_fw-la qui_fw-la aliter_fw-la praeter_fw-la haec_fw-la agitpericlitetur_fw-la de_fw-la clero_fw-la svo_fw-la the_o holy_a synod_n do_v forbid_v by_o all_o mean_n and_o determine_v it_o to_o be_v unlawful_a for_o any_o bishop_n priest_n deacon_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n to_o have_v any_o extern_a woman_n with_o they_o except_o perhaps_o it_o be_v their_o mother_n sister_n grandmother_n or_o aunt_n by_o father_n or_o mother_n side_n for_o in_o these_o all_o suspicion_n that_o may_v arise_v about_o dwell_v with_o woman_n be_v decline_v and_o he_o that_o shall_v do_v contrary_a to_o this_o shall_v lose_v his_o clergy_n thus_o that_o first_o and_o famous_a council_n decree_v ratify_v and_o enact_v for_o the_o angelical_a continency_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o those_o day_n 37._o and_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o holy_a council_n be_v according_a to_o the_o plain_a purport_n of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o canon_n to_o wit_n that_o clergy_n man_n can_v not_o marry_v after_o they_o
ter_z simul_fw-la in_o faciem_fw-la eorum_fw-la &_o aures_fw-la insufflando_fw-la breathe_v three_o time_n one_o after_o a_o other_o on_o their_o face_n and_o ear_n and_o so_o we_o catechise_v consecrate_v and_o cure_v they_o ordain_v that_o they_o live_v a_o great_a while_n in_o our_o church_n and_o hear_v the_o scripture_n and_o then_o we_o do_v baptize_v they_o so_o enact_v that_o ancient_a canon_n conclude_v by_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o bishop_n and_o now_o whether_o this_o antiquity_n be_v more_o observe_v or_o better_o resemble_v by_o the_o protestant_n or_o roman_a church_n i_o leave_v the_o point_n to_o every_o man_n to_o consider_v of_o for_o intend_v brevity_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o prosecute_v matter_n at_o large_a but_o only_o to_o point_v at_o these_o two_o thing_n by_o the_o way_n that_o may_v show_v conformity_n or_o deformity_n between_o that_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o protestant_n or_o catholic_a roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n 44._o out_o of_o the_o three_o council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 42_o 8._o sundry_a weighty_a point_n occur_v and_o represent_v themselves_o worthy_a of_o observation_n albeit_o all_o of_o they_o be_v over_o long_o here_o to_o be_v recite_v and_o first_o i_o remember_v the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v and_o condemn_v of_o nestorius_n the_o archhereticke_n as_o it_o be_v most_o faithful_o record_v ephesus_n by_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o commonitorium_fw-la the_o 42._o chapter_n and_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o by_o he_o who_o live_v in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o council_n and_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v may_v be_v present_a there_o at_o in_o this_o manner_n this_o council_n of_o ephesus_n discuss_v and_o reason_v touch_v the_o establish_n of_o some_o rule_n of_o faith_n lest_o any_o profane_a novelty_n like_v to_o the_o armenian_a treachery_n may_v creep_v into_o this_o council_n all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o priest_n thither_o assemble_v which_o be_v almost_o 200._o conclude_v and_o agree_v upon_o this_o as_o best_a and_o most_o catholic_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o opinion_n and_o judgment_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n shall_v be_v bring_v forth_o before_o the_o council_n such_o father_n as_o have_v be_v either_o martyr_n or_o consessor_n or_o at_o least_o constant_a catholic_a priest_n and_o according_a unto_o their_o joint_a consent_n and_o unamine_fw-la decree_n the_o point_n then_o controvert_v betwixt_o nestorius_n and_o s._n cyrill_n shall_v be_v decide_v and_o final_o determine_v this_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n first_o enact_v and_o according_a unto_o this_o nestorius_n as_o contrary_a to_o catholic_a verity_n be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o bless_a s._n cyrill_n be_v judge_v consonant_a unto_o antiquity_n so_o vincentius_n and_o now_o will_v the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o make_v show_v of_o receive_v this_o council_n stand_v to_o this_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o faith_n about_o the_o examine_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o father_n enact_v and_o put_v in_o practice_n by_o this_o council_n against_o nestorius_n and_o will_v they_o submit_v all_o their_o judgment_n unto_o the_o assembly_n of_o father_n as_o this_o council_n do_v 45._o my_o second_o observation_n out_o of_o this_o council_n be_v this_o that_o when_o great_a stir_n and_o trouble_n be_v expect_v by_o the_o pious_a and_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinianus_n by_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a concourse_n of_o people_n of_o all_o sort_n unto_o that_o place_n especial_o many_o favourite_n of_o nestorius_n the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n against_o who_o this_o council_n be_v gather_v it_o seem_v necessary_a unto_o the_o say_a emperor_n to_o send_v thither_o a_o earl_n of_o their_o court_n name_v candidianus_n who_o shall_v represent_v their_o person_n for_o see_v peace_n and_o good_a order_n keep_v but_o yet_o with_o express_a protestation_n that_o it_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o imperat._n nor_o any_o other_o secular_a man_n to_o have_v any_o deal_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o that_o council_n and_o this_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o i_o observe_v which_o now_o follow_v candidianum_fw-la say_v they_o praeclarissimum_fw-la religiosorum_fw-la domesticorum_fw-la comitem_fw-la ad_fw-la sacram_fw-la pestram_fw-la synodum_fw-la abire_fw-la iussimus_fw-la sed_fw-la ea_fw-la lege_fw-la &_o conditione_n ut_fw-la tum_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la &_o controversiis_fw-la quae_fw-la circa_fw-la fidei_fw-la dogmata_fw-la incidunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la quicquam_fw-la common_a habeat_fw-la nefas_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la qui_fw-la sanctissimorum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la numero_fw-la &_o catalogo_fw-la adseriptus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la illum_fw-la ecclesiastitis_fw-la negotijs_fw-la &_o consultationibꝰ_n seize_v immiscere_fw-la we_o have_v command_v the_o most_o honourable_a count_n candidian_n one_o of_o our_o religious_a family_n to_o go_v unto_o your_o holy_a synod_n but_o with_o this_o charge_n and_o condition_n that_o he_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o any_o question_n of_o controversy_n that_o fall_v out_o about_o consultation_n matter_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n to_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n or_o consultation_n so_o those_o two_o emperor_n which_o convince_v sufficient_o that_o they_o hold_v not_o themselves_o for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o judge_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o inferior_a unto_o bishop_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o will_v the_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v this_o council_n admit_v this_o also_o 46._o but_o now_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o religious_a emperor_n disclaim_v from_o this_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n over_o the_o council_n so_o i_o find_v that_o celestinus_fw-la then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o to_o appertain_v unto_o he_o and_o it_o be_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n without_o either_o opposition_n or_o contradiction_n grant_v unto_o he_o for_o first_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o be_v present_a himself_o he_o design_v and_o depute_a s._n cyrill_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v his_o substitute_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o letter_n read_z and_o approve_v in_o the_o council_n his_o word_n be_v these_o quamobrem_fw-la nostrae_fw-la sedis_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la 16_o ascita_fw-la nostraque_fw-la vice_n &_o loco_fw-la cum_fw-la potes●tae_fw-la usus_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la non_fw-la absque_fw-la exquisita_fw-la severitate_fw-la sententiam_fw-la exequeris_fw-la etc._n etc._n wherefore_o you_o take_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o sea_n upon_o you_o and_o use_v our_o room_n and_o place_n with_o the_o power_n thereto_o belong_v shall_v execute_v with_o punctual_a severity_n the_o sentence_n give_v against_o nestorius_n to_o wit_n of_o excommunication_n and_o deposition_n and_o that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o revoke_v his_o heresy_n within_o ten_o day_n after_o this_o our_o admonition_n give_v unto_o he_o that_o you_o present_o provide_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n of_o another_o bishop_n and_o let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o way_n cut_v of_o from_o our_o body_n so_o he_o 47._o thus_o write_v pope_n celestinus_fw-la from_o rome_n where_o he_o have_v hold_v a_o particular_a council_n and_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n in_o the_o west_n before_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v gather_v in_o the_o east_n in_o which_o coucell_n of_o ephesus_n he_o not_o be_v able_a to_o be_v present_a as_o be_v aforesaid_a design_v his_o authority_n to_o s._n cyril_n as_o well_o for_o preside_v in_o the_o same_o council_n as_o also_o for_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n which_o proceed_n of_o celestinus_fw-la be_v recount_v afterward_o again_o by_o the_o say_a council_n and_o approve_v in_o a_o general_a letter_n which_o the_o whole_a council_n write_v unto_o the_o 17_o two_o emperor_n which_o begin_v vestram_fw-la christianissimi_fw-la reges_fw-la etc._n etc._n 48._o but_o this_o be_v confirm_v yet_o further_o for_o that_o the_o say_v holy_a father_n celestinus_fw-la send_v from_o rome_n three_o other_o legate_n to_o join_v with_o s._n cyrill_n in_o that_o legation_n for_o the_o presidence_n of_o the_o council_n whereof_o two_o be_v bishop_n proiectus_fw-la and_o arcadius_n the_o three_o a_o priest_n only_o call_v philip_n who_o always_o be_v admit_v for_o legate_n in_o the_o council_n do_v firm_a &_o subscribe_v their_o name_n after_o s._n cyrill_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o rest_n yea_o when_o the_o two_o bishop-legate_n be_v absent_a from_o the_o council_n upon_o any_o occasion_n this_o philip_n though_o but_o a_o priest_n do_v subscribe_v next_o after_o s._n cyrill_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o tomo_fw-la ephesus_n 2._o cap._n 13._o and_o moreover_o at_o his_o first_o come_v and_o appearance_n in_o the_o council_n he_o use_v this_o speech_n gratias_fw-la agamus_fw-la sanctae_fw-la venerandaeque_fw-la huic_fw-la synodo_fw-la quòd_fw-la literis_fw-la celestini_n sanctissimi_fw-la beatissimique_fw-la
further_o i_o find_v that_o the_o jesuit_n be_v never_o so_o strict_a with_o the_o father_n as_o to_o restrain_v their_o credit_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o first_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n only_o and_o consequent_o to_o accept_v some_o &_o reject_v other_o and_o all_o at_o their_o proper_a pleasure_n as_o the_o protestant_n do_v but_o that_o they_o think_v the_o same_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o same_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v also_o to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o succeed_a age_n and_o shall_v do_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 8._o nor_o do_v i_o find_v they_o any_o where_o to_o affirm_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n do_v usual_o contradict_v other_o nor_o yet_o be_v they_o ever_o of_o this_o erroneous_a and_o dangerous_a opinion_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o each_o particular_a man_n to_o arrogate_v that_o liberty_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o father_n as_o where_o he_o find_v they_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n there_o to_o believe_v they_o &_o where_o otherwise_o in_o his_o opinion_n there_o with_o their_o reverence_n to_o reject_v they_o for_o that_o this_o will_v come_v to_o the_o same_o issue_n before_o mention_v to_o wit_n that_o every_o man_n private_a judgement_n shall_v be_v his_o own_o rule_n and_o then_o will_v it_o consequent_o follow_v that_o quot_fw-la homines_fw-la tot_fw-la sententiae_fw-la we_o shall_v have_v as_o many_o controversy_n touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n as_o we_o have_v already_o about_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o who_o see_v not_o whereunto_o this_o secret_o tend_v even_o to_o leave_v nothing_o sound_a stable_z and_o certain_a in_o religion_n which_o must_v be_v needs_o at_o last_o the_o overthrow_n of_o all_o religion_n 9_o and_o now_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o every_o private_a spirit_n and_o particular_a man_n to_o judge_v when_o father_n do_v allege_v inconvenience_n scripture_n whether_o they_o do_v allege_v they_o right_o to_o the_o purpose_n or_o no_o then_o arise_v another_o question_n interminable_a whether_o in_o all_o liklihood_n of_o reason_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o that_o private_a man_n shall_v understand_v the_o scripture_n better_o than_o that_o father_n or_o ancient_a doctor_n 10._o and_o as_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o s._n augustine_n suggest_v unto_o his_o majesty_n by_o our_o english_a minister_n for_o patronise_a of_o this_o point_n and_o reduce_v of_o all_o both_o scripture_n and_o father_n unto_o the_o examine_v of_o a_o private_a spirit_n i_o have_v diligent_o peruse_v the_o place_n as_o it_o lie_v in_o his_o second_o book_n against_o cresconius_n cap._n 31._o and_o 32._o and_o upon_o a_o exact_a survey_n of_o the_o place_n i_o find_v that_o s._n augustine_n give_v no_o such_o general_a rule_n or_o warrant_v for_o particular_a man_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o father_n write_n and_o citation_n of_o scripture_n use_v by_o they_o but_o only_o in_o the_o case_n and_o cause_n of_o s._n cyprian_n that_o have_v hold_v contrary_a unto_o the_o whole_a church_n viz._n that_o man_n come_v from_o heresy_n be_v to_o be_v rebaptise_v who_o epistle_n also_o be_v urge_v by_o cresconius_n the_o donatist_n against_o s._n augustine_n tamquam_fw-la firmamenta_fw-la canonicae_fw-la veritatis_fw-la as_o ground_n of_o canonical_a truth_n to_o use_v s._n augustine_n his_o word_n i_o say_v upon_o these_o premise_n the_o say_a father_n answer_v thus_o unto_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_a object_v that_o in_o a_o manifest_a point_n of_o heresy_n for_o so_o be_v the_o opinion_n and_o yet_o s._n cyprian_n be_v no_o heretik_a since_o he_o never_o defend_v it_o with_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o church_n but_o in_o all_o his_o opinion_n submit_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n nos_fw-la nullam_fw-la cypriano_n sacimus_fw-la iniuriam_fw-la cum_fw-la eius_fw-la quaslibet_fw-la literas_fw-la à_fw-la canonica_n divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la distinguimus_fw-la we_o do_v no_o injury_n unto_o cyprian_a when_o we_o do_v distinguish_v any_o of_o his_o epistle_n from_o the_o canonical_a authority_n of_o divine_a scripture_n 11._o and_o afterward_o again_o have_v name_v the_o epistle_n which_o cresconius_n urge_v he_o proceed_v thus_o ego_fw-la huius_fw-la epistolae_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la non_fw-la teneor_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o admit_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o epistle_n for_o that_o i_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_a as_o canonical_a but_o do_v consider_v they_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v canonical_a etc._n etc._n final_o after_o a_o long_a praise_n case_n of_o s._n cyprian_n of_o his_o wit_n eloquence_n charity_n and_o martyrdom_n s._n augustine_n conclude_v that_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o yet_o for_o that_o in_o this_o point_n he_o dissent_v from_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n he_o refuse_v to_o follow_v he_o his_o word_n be_v these_o hoc_fw-la quòd_fw-la aliter_fw-la sapuit_fw-la non_fw-la acipio_fw-la non_fw-la accipio_fw-la inquam_fw-la quòd_fw-la de_fw-la baptizandis_fw-la &_o schismaticis_fw-la beatus_fw-la cyprianus_n sensit_fw-la quòd_fw-la hoc_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la accepit_fw-la pro_fw-la quae_fw-la beatus_fw-la cyprianus_n sanguinem_fw-la sudit_fw-la this_o that_o s._n cyprian_n hold_v different_o from_o other_o though_o not_o obstinate_o i_o do_v not_o admit_v i_o do_v not_o admit_v i_o say_v that_o which_o bless_v cyprian_n do_v hold_v about_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n and_o i_o do_v not_o admit_v it_o for_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o admit_v it_o for_o which_o church_n bless_v s._n cyprian_n do_v shed_v his_o blood_n 12._o so_o then_o we_o see_v that_o this_o which_o s._n augustine_n here_o instance_v and_o speak_v of_o compare_v and_o try_v s._n cyprian_n his_o epistle_n by_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o general_a case_n nor_o common_a rule_n nor_o warrant_v that_o every_o particler_n man_n may_v do_v the_o same_o to_o the_o writer_n of_o every_o particular_a doctor_n for_o first_o s._n augustine_n himself_o that_o make_v this_o examine_v of_o scripture_n be_v a_o great_a and_o learned_a doctor_n yea_o one_o of_o the_o great_a that_o ever_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v and_o consequent_o be_v personal_o invest_v with_o some_o more_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n than_o every_o ordinary_a protestant_n minister_n second_o he_o perceive_v right_o well_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v much_o like_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n to_o wit_n new_a and_o dissonant_n from_o scripture_n and_o different_a from_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o doctor_n expound_v those_o scripture_n not_o receive_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n nay_o and_o that_o which_o be_v above_o all_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n three_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o presume_v upon_o his_o own_o authority_n to_o condemn_v s._n cyprian_n opinion_n as_o dissonant_n from_o the_o scripture_n for_o that_o in_o this_o case_n the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_a may_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v as_o good_a as_o the_o authorty_fw-la of_o s._n augustine_n especial_o have_v seal_v the_o gospel_n with_o his_o blood_n which_o the_o other_o though_o a_o great_a saint_n have_v not_o do_v nor_o be_v put_v unto_o but_o s._n augustine_n find_v s._n cyprian_n his_o opinion_n dissent_v from_o the_o true_a scripture_n exposition_n as_o it_o be_v carry_v along_o by_o the_o most_o holy_a tradition_n of_o catholic_a church_n and_o so_o be_v s._n augustine_n to_o be_v understand_v for_o scripture_n and_o church_n ever_o go_v together_o in_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o they_o never_o understand_v the_o one_o without_o the_o other_o all_o which_o circumstance_n be_v of_o exceed_a weight_n and_o importance_n in_o this_o case_n about_o which_o notwithstanding_o i_o have_v think_v it_o convenient_a as_o before_o so_o here_o to_o lay_v forth_o some_o further_a and_o particular_a consideration_n the_o first_o consideration_n first_o then_o touch_v the_o different_a esteem_n which_o one_o roman_a catholic_n and_o profess_v protestant_n do_v hold_n of_o unanime_fw-la consent_n of_o ancient_a father_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o first_o point_n here_o touch_v &_o therefore_o of_o we_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o be_v discuss_v i_o consider_v yet_o further_o what_o i_o have_v read_v in_o s._n augustine_n concern_v this_o point_n which_o holy_a saint_n and_o great_a doctor_n though_o as_o now_o in_o part_n we_o have_v show_v he_o do_v always_o postpone_v what_o authority_n of_o ancient_a father_n soever_o to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n &_o all_o particular_a opinion_n of_o some_o one_o or_o few_o unto_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o great_a part_n but_o especial_o unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v the_o same_o father_n so_o respective_a in_o all_o his_o write_n to_o conserve_v the_o reverence_n and_o just_a deserve_a reputation_n of_o these_o great_a saint_n and_o servant_n
of_o god_n and_o renown_a pillar_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n ever_o most_o due_a unto_o they_o for_o the_o expound_v of_o those_o scripture_n as_o he_o do_v never_o urge_v any_o thing_n more_o earnest_o or_o eager_o against_o heretic_n than_o their_o authority_n for_o exposition_n of_o sacred_a writ_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v natural_o hateful_a unto_o they_o who_o be_v inventor_n of_o novelty_n &_o enemy_n to_o antiquity_n &_o false_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n which_o all_o sectary_n be_v as_o be_v define_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o second_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n against_o the_o heretic_n nestorius_n 14._o and_o therefore_o say_v the_o say_a s._n augustine_n unto_o julian_n finem_fw-la the_o pelagian_n heretic_n probavimus_fw-la catholicorum_n authoritate_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la qui_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la asserunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o have_v prove_v this_o now_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n saint_n that_o do_v affirm_v it_o against_o you_o and_o they_o be_v such_o man_n and_o so_o great_a in_o the_o catholic_n say_v which_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o world_n ut_fw-la vestra_fw-la fragilis_fw-la &_o argutula_fw-la novitas_fw-la solo_fw-la illorum_fw-la conteratur_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la that_o your_o vain_a and_o subtle_a novelty_n be_v crush_v whole_o by_o their_o only_a authority_n and_o then_o again_o auctoritate_fw-la primitus_fw-la eorum_fw-la vestra_fw-la est_fw-la contumacia_fw-la comprimenda_fw-la first_o of_o all_o your_o contumacy_n be_v to_o be_v repress_v or_o beat_v down_o by_o their_o authority_n he_o mean_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a father_n way_n that_o s._n augustine_n take_v with_o they_o though_o all_o these_o heretic_n as_o forerunner_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o cite_v of_o scripture_n as_o fast_o as_o any_o other_o heretic_n 15._o but_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v seek_v out_o by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o so_o do_v his_o word_n flat_o prove_v tun_n ●ypo_fw-la say_v he_o limes_z sanae_fw-la fidei_fw-la defenditur_fw-la quando_fw-la termini_fw-la quos_fw-la posuerunt_fw-la sancti_fw-la patres_fw-la non_fw-la transseruntur_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la imo_fw-la obseruantur_fw-la &_o defensantur_fw-la then_o the_o limit_n of_o sound_n say_v to_o wit_n the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n defend_v by_o we_o when_o we_o do_v not_o change_v and_o alter_v the_o bound_n thereof_o place_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o rather_o do_v observe_v and_o defend_v the_o same_o that_o be_v we_o do_v follow_v their_o interpretation_n and_o ancient_a exposition_n 16._o and_o further_a yet_o reason_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr nuptijs_fw-la &_o concupiscentia_fw-la to_o the_o count_n or_o earl_n valerius_n i_o mean_v concern_v the_o sincere_a exposition_n of_o the_o 29._o ancient_a father_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o novellant_n he_o say_v quid_fw-la dicam_fw-la de_fw-la ipsis_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la litter_n arum_fw-la tractatoribus_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la floruerunt_fw-la quomodo_fw-la haec_fw-la non_fw-la conati_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o alios_fw-la sensus_fw-la vertere_fw-la quoniani_n stabiles_fw-la erant_fw-la in_o antiquissima_fw-la &_o robustissima_fw-la fide_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la novitio_fw-la movebantur_fw-la errore_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o the_o expositor_n themselves_o of_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o have_v flourish_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n how_o they_o never_o attempt_v to_o turn_v these_o place_n allege_v into_o other_o sense_n then_o from_o antiquity_n they_o have_v receive_v they_o for_o that_o they_o be_v most_o firm_a and_o stable_n in_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o strong_a say_v and_o be_v nothing_o move_v with_o late_o hatch_v error_n so_o he_o 17._o and_o for_o confirmation_n of_o this_o have_v allege_v the_o example_n both_o of_o s._n cyprian_n and_o s._n ambrose_n show_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o they_o that_o original_a sin_n be_v in_o infant_n baptism_n and_o that_o for_o remedy_n and_o remove_v thereof_o they_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n with_o the_o old_a ceremony_n of_o exorcism_n and_o exufflation_n the_o pelagian_n heretic_n that_o not_o only_o deny_v but_o scoff_v at_o these_o thing_n call_v the_o use_n thereof_o manicheisme_n be_v answer_v by_o s._n august_n thus_o hosiste_v audiat_fw-la dicere_fw-la manichaeos_n &_o antiquissimam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la traditionem_fw-la isto_fw-la nefario_fw-la crimine_fw-la aspergat_fw-la qua_fw-la exor●izantur_fw-la ut_fw-la dixi_fw-la &_o exufflantur_fw-la paruuli_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v he_o dare_v to_o call_v those_o two_o father_n manichaean_n and_o let_v he_o lay_v the_o same_o wicked_a crime_n of_o manicheisme_n upon_o the_o most_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o tradition_n infant_n as_o before_o i_o have_v say_v be_v exorcize_v and_o breathe_v on_o at_o their_o baptism_n that_o by_o these_o mean_v they_o may_v be_v translate_v from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ibid._n christ._n so_o s._n augustine_n who_o add_v present_o that_o albeit_o he_o be_v scorn_v at_o for_o this_o by_o heretic_n yet_o such_o be_v his_o resolution_n that_o he_o burst_v forth_o into_o these_o word_n follow_v nos_fw-la paratiores_fw-la sumus_fw-la cumistis_fw-la viris_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o huiu●_n fidei_fw-la antiquitate_fw-la frmati_fw-la quaelibet_fw-la maledicta_fw-la &_o contumelas_n perpeti_fw-la quám_fw-la pelagiani_n cuiuslibet_fw-la eloquij_fw-la praedicatione_n laudari_fw-la we_o be_v more_o ready_a say_v he_o with_o these_o father_n and_o with_o the_o church_n of_o god_n root_v in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o this_o say_v to_o suffer_v &_o ceremony_n abide_v all_o kind_n of_o reproach_n and_o contumely_n then_o to_o be_v exalt_v with_o the_o praise_n of_o any_o pelagian_n eloquence_n whatsoever_o and_o do_v not_o this_o fall_n just_a upon_o the_o neck_n of_o all_o our_o modern_a protestant_n do_v they_o not_o scorn_v deride_v and_o jest_n as_o much_o at_o these_o two_o ancient_a ceremony_n of_o exorcism_n &_o exufflation_n as_o ever_o the_o pelagian_n heretic_n do_v 18._o with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v they_o challenge_v s._n augustine_n to_o be_v they_o nay_o be_v not_o pelagius_n and_o his_o rank_n of_o heretic_n fit_a for_o their_o society_n since_o they_o do_v so_o jump_v and_o conspire_v together_o and_o that_o against_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o catholic_n doctor_n nay_o i_o find_v s._n augustine_n to_o go_v yet_o much_o further_o in_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o patronise_a of_o the_o reverend_a rank_n of_o holy_a father_n against_o profane_a heretic_n though_o some_o of_o those_o ancient_a worthy_n who_o he_o commend_v live_v either_o in_o his_o own_o time_n or_o not_o very_o long_o before_o he_o for_o that_o eyt_n their_o doctrine_n against_o julian_n the_o pelagian_n that_o make_v so_o light_a account_n of_o they_o and_o scoff_v at_o they_o he_o expostulate_v thus_o numquid_fw-la iraeneus_n cyprianus_n reti●ius_n pelagiau_n olympius_n hilarius_n gregorius_n basilius_n ambrose_n &_o joannes_n chrysostomus_n de_fw-fr plebe_fw-la a_o fece_n sellulariorum_fw-la sicut_fw-la tullianè_fw-la iocaris_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v iraeneus_n cyprian_n and_o the_o rest_n here_o name_v of_o the_o low_a house_n or_o have_v they_o vulgar_a seat_n in_o your_o parliament_n as_o out_o of_o your_o tullian_n eloquence_n you_o do_v scoff_n be_v they_o raise_v up_o for_o envy_n of_o you_o be_v they_o young_a soldier_n or_o auditory_a scholar_n be_v they_o shipman_n taverner_n host_n cook_n butcher_n be_v they_o dissolute_a young_a man_n make_v of_o apostata_fw-la monk_n &_o c._n who_o you_o by_o your_o scoff_a urbanity_n or_o rather_o vanity_n do_v exagitate_v vilify_v condemn_v and_o contemn_v 19_o thus_o write_v s._n augustine_n that_o holy_a saint_n and_o great_a doctor_n in_o god_n church_n against_o the_o malepert_a sauciness_n of_o that_o heretic_n that_o so_o little_o regard_v and_o so_o base_o account_v of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o have_v allege_v their_o authority_n he_o make_v this_o inference_n of_o honour_n and_o reverence_n on_o their_o behalf_n talibus_fw-la post_fw-la apostolos_fw-la sancta_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la plantatoribus_fw-la rigatoribus_fw-la adificatoribus_fw-la pastoribus_fw-la nutritoribus_fw-la crevit_fw-la ideo_fw-la prophanas_fw-la voces_fw-la vestrae_fw-la novitatis_fw-la expavit_fw-la under_o such_o planter_n after_o the_o apostle_n under_o such_o waterer_n builder_n pastor_n and_o nourisher_n as_o these_o be_v and_o be_v have_v the_o church_n grow_v up_o and_o do_v tremble_v at_o the_o profane_a voice_n of_o your_o novelty_n and_o a_o little_a after_o repeat_v again_o for_o honour_n cause_n the_o very_a same_o father_n with_o addition_n only_o of_o two_o more_o of_o his_o time_n to_o wit_n pope_n innocentius_n the_o first_o &_o s._n hierome_n he_o account_v their_o testimony_n and_o of_o such_o other_o as_o hold_v communion_n and_o participation_n with_o they_o to_o be_v the_o very_a speak_a voice_n and_o lively_a oracle_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o
that_o it_o be_v plain_a madness_n in_o the_o heretic_n to_o make_v so_o small_a account_n of_o they_o nay_o he_o further_o resolve_v and_o with_o mature_a deliberation_n conclude_v that_o the_o dogma_fw-la ticall_a faith_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o these_o father_n conspire_v and_o agree_v together_o in_o one_o be_v to_o be_v defend_v against_o he_o and_o against_o all_o other_o such_o like_a heretic_n as_o he_o be_v no_o other_o way_n than_o christ_n gospel_n be_v to_o be_v defend_v against_o infidel_n his_o word_n be_v these_o 20._o aduersus_fw-la hanc_fw-la autem_fw-la miserabilem_fw-la quam_fw-la deus_fw-la avertat_fw-la insaniam_fw-la sic_fw-la respondendum_fw-la video_fw-la libris_fw-la tuis_fw-la ut_fw-la fides_fw-la queque_fw-la adversus_fw-la te_fw-la father_n desendatur_fw-la istorum_fw-la sicut_fw-la contra_fw-la impios_fw-la &_o christiprofessos_fw-la inimicos_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipsum_fw-la defendetur_fw-la euangelium_fw-la against_o this_o miserable_a desperate_a madness_n of_o thou_o which_o god_n turn_v from_o thou_o i_o do_v see_v that_o i_o must_v so_o answer_v to_o thy_o book_n that_o the_o faith_n of_o these_o father_n be_v defend_v against_o thou_o as_o the_o very_a gospel_n itself_o of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v defend_v against_o impious_a man_n and_o as_o against_o the_o very_a profess_a enemy_n of_o christ._n so_o he_o and_o yet_o in_o another_o place_n press_v again_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o say_a father_n he_o do_v entreat_v his_o adversary_n julian_n to_o believe_v these_o holy_a father_n and_o by_o they_o to_o be_v make_v friend_n with_o he_o yea_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n from_o which_o he_o stand_v as_o yet_o separate_v and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o very_a same_o offer_n we_o make_v to_o the_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n and_o then_o s._n augustine_n go_v on_o forwards_o in_o ratifi_a their_o authority_n sad_v present_o for_o further_a corroboration_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o antiquity_n quod_fw-la credunt_fw-la credo_fw-la quod_fw-la tenent_fw-la teneo_fw-la quod_fw-la circamed_a docent_fw-la doceo_fw-la quod_fw-la praedicant_fw-la praedico_fw-la istis_fw-la crede_fw-la &_o mihi_fw-la credes_fw-la acquiesce_v istis_fw-la &_o quiesces_fw-la à_fw-it me_fw-it etc._n etc._n what_o these_o father_n do_v believe_v i_o do_v believe_v what_o they_o hold_v i_o hold_v what_o they_o teach_v i_o teach_v what_o they_o preach_v i_o preach_v yield_v unto_o these_o and_o you_o will_v yield_v unto_o i_o have_v peace_n with_o these_o and_o you_o will_v have_v peace_n with_o i_o and_o last_o of_o all_o say_v he_o if_o you_o will_v not_o by_o they_o be_v make_v friend_n with_o i_o at_o least_o wise_a be_v not_o you_o by_o i_o make_v enemy_n unto_o they_o a_o golden_a sentence_n and_o then_o he_o go_v forward_o say_n shall_v pelagius_n and_o celestinus_fw-la the_o author_n of_o your_o heresy_n be_v of_o such_o authority_n with_o you_o that_o you_o for_o their_o society_n will_v leave_v the_o fellowship_n and_o company_n of_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o church_n disperse_v from_o east_n to_o west_n from_o north_n to_o south_n and_o those_o both_o ancient_a and_o near_o unto_o our_o age_n partly_o dead_a and_o yet_o partly_o live_v so_o he_o 21._o which_o speech_n of_o s._n augustine_n do_v seem_v unto_o i_o so_o fit_o and_o proper_o to_o touch_v and_o concern_v the_o protestant_n of_o our_o day_n who_o for_o the_o love_n of_o luther_n &_o calvin_n author_n of_o their_o novelty_n do_v forgo_v all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n not_o only_o ancient_a but_o modern_a also_o as_o that_o nothing_o in_o my_o judgement_n can_v be_v produce_v of_o near_a affinity_n to_o hold_v great_a correspondency_n or_o be_v more_o like_a or_o more_o semblable_a 22._o neither_o yet_o do_v s._n augustine_n determine_v only_o that_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v absolute_o the_o best_a witness_n and_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n that_o arise_v and_o spring_v up_o after_o their_o day_n but_o together_o with_o his_o authority_n which_o have_v be_v alone_o sufficient_a he_o yealede_v a_o very_a substantial_a and_o convince_a reason_n for_o the_o same_o and_o it_o be_v this_o that_o the_o father_n can_v not_o be_v partial_a judge_n of_o such_o cause_n as_o come_v into_o controversy_n after_o their_o death_n for_o that_o they_o give_v forth_o their_o verdict_n and_o judgement_n before_o any_o controversy_n be_v stir_v or_o move_v about_o the_o same_o and_o thus_o much_o do_v his_o word_n import_v as_o they_o follow_v 23._o tunc_fw-la de_fw-la ista_fw-la causa_fw-la iudicaverunt_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n quando_fw-la cosnemo_fw-la dicere_fw-la potest_fw-la perperàm_fw-la quicquam_fw-la vel_fw-la adversari_fw-la velsavere_fw-la propefinen_n potuisse_fw-la nondum_fw-la enim_fw-la extiteratis_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o father_n do_v judge_v of_o this_o cause_n at_o that_o time_n when_o no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o they_o do_v wrongful_o favour_v or_o disfavour_v any_o party_n for_o that_o you_o pelagian_n be_v not_o then_o in_o the_o world_n with_o who_o we_o may_v have_v contention_n about_o this_o question_n etc._n etc._n they_o do_v not_o attend_v unto_o any_o friendship_n either_o with_o we_o or_o with_o you_o they_o do_v not_o exercise_v amity_n or_o enmity_n with_o either_o of_o we_o they_o be_v angry_a neither_o with_o you_o nor_o with_o we_o neither_o yet_o have_v they_o commiseration_n towards_o any_o of_o augustine_n our_o part_n that_o which_o they_o find_v in_o the_o church_n they_o hold_v that_o which_o they_o learn_v they_o teach_v that_o which_o they_o recyve_v and_o learn_v from_o their_o father_n by_o tradition_n they_o teach_v and_o leave_v unto_o their_o child_n we_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o plead_v with_o you_o before_o these_o judge_n &_o yet_o by_o they_o be_v our_o case_n decide_v and_o determine_v nor_o you_o nor_o we_o be_v know_v unto_o they_o and_o yet_o do_v we_o out_o of_o their_o work_n produce_v their_o sentence_n against_o you_o we_o have_v as_o yet_o no_o strife_n with_o you_o nor_o plead_v any_o cause_n and_o yet_o have_v we_o conquer_v you_o by_o their_o verdict_n hitherto_o be_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n 24._o which_o when_o i_o have_v consider_v &_o ponder_v well_o with_o myself_o as_o also_o reflect_v upon_o all_o s._n augustine_n his_o former_a sentence_n compare_v they_o all_o together_o and_o confer_v they_o with_o the_o state_n of_o our_o present_a time_n and_o manner_n of_o man_n therein_o i_o seem_v to_o behold_v as_o in_o a_o clear_a glass_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o understanding_n the_o very_a person_n and_o self_n same_o cause_n of_o saint_n augustine_n to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a writer_n of_o our_o day_n as_o contrariwise_o also_o that_o of_o the_o pelagian_n and_o of_o other_o old_a heretic_n to_o be_v in_o the_o protestant_n the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o make_v like_o account_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n i_o mean_v the_o catholic_n esteem_v they_o high_o and_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n the_o other_o reject_v they_o where_o they_o make_v against_o they_o which_o as_o it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v before_o so_o may_v i_o here_o adjoine_v also_o many_o other_o proof_n thereof_o if_o i_o will_v spend_v more_o time_n in_o allege_v their_o sentence_n let_v m._n whitaker_n assertion_n speak_v for_o all_o who_o of_o this_o matter_n write_v thus_o if_o you_o argue_v from_o the_o witness_n of_o man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o learned_a and_o ancient_a we_o yield_v no_o more_o to_o their_o word_n in_o cause_n of_o say_v and_o religion_n than_o we_o perceive_v to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n neither_o think_v you_o yourself_o to_o have_v prove_v any_o thing_n although_o you_o bring_v against_o we_o the_o whole_a consent_n &_o swarm_v of_o father_n except_o that_o which_o they_o say_v be_v justify_v not_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n himself_o the_o second_o consideration_n as_o my_o first_o consideration_n be_v whole_o conversant_a about_o the_o just_a deserve_a credit_n of_o ancient_a father_n agre_v to_o gather_v in_o general_a either_o in_o the_o full_a voice_n of_o all_o father_n or_o in_o the_o great_a part_n and_o consent_n of_o they_o so_o be_v my_o second_o employ_v about_o the_o same_o credit_n &_o authority_n of_o particular_a father_n either_o one_o or_o two_o or_o more_o aver_n any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o reprehend_v by_o other_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n about_o which_o point_n i_o see_v less_o ascribe_v in_o his_o majesty_n book_n unto_o their_o promerited_a estimation_n than_o catholic_n do_v hold_v in_o their_o orthodox_a assertion_n and_o much_o less_o than_o i_o myself_o have_v purposely_o read_v and_o observe_v in_o the_o former_a mention_v holy_a father_n s._n augustine_n concern_v that_o point_n for_o as_o his_o majesty_n yield_v less_o to_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o doctor_n which_o must_v
of_o necessity_n make_v the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n if_o ever_o christ_n leave_v behind_o he_o any_o church_n at_o all_o to_o continue_v when_o he_o write_v that_o he_o will_v either_o believe_v they_o or_o at_o least_o wise_a will_v be_v humble_o silent_a and_o not_o condemn_v they_o as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v so_o in_o this_o very_o second_o point_n of_o particular_a father_n i_o find_v it_o thus_o write_v by_o his_o majesty_n 26._o but_o for_o every_o private_a father_n opinion_n say_v he_o it_o bind_v not_o my_o conscience_n more_o than_o bellarmine_n every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n usual_o contradict_v of_o other_o the_o first_o part_n of_o which_o sentence_n to_o wit_n that_o every_o private_a opinion_n of_o every_o father_n bind_v not_o a_o man_n conscience_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o it_o need_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o for_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o if_o the_o opinion_n be_v indeed_o private_a then_o be_v it_o not_o true_o catholic_a and_o consequent_o be_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o bind_v no_o man_n 27._o but_o for_o the_o late_a period_n of_o the_o sentence_n be_v whole_o derogatory_n from_o the_o credit_n of_o antiquity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o father_n do_v usual_o contradict_v other_o in_o matter_n concern_v religion_n this_o must_v needs_o presubpose_v to_o have_v some_o favourable_a interpretation_n afford_v it_o to_o free_v it_o from_o open_a injure_v and_o wrong_v of_o the_o father_n and_o so_o my_o hope_n be_v that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o contradiction_n suppose_v to_o be_v a_o among_o the_o father_n be_v only_a diversity_n of_o judgement_n in_o matter_n that_o be_v not_o determinate_o the_o fide_fw-la or_o that_o do_v not_o concern_v any_o article_n of_o belief_n but_o either_o such_o matter_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o may_v without_o breach_n of_o union_n or_o charity_n be_v diverse_o dispute_v of_o among_o catholic_a 2._o man_n or_o else_o when_o diverse_a father_n do_v give_v diverse_a sense_n of_o scripture_n some_o the_o literal_a other_o the_o allegorical_a and_o all_o true_a all_o intend_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o we_o have_v former_o note_v now_o the_o rule_n that_o we_o must_v here_o observe_v concern_v these_o point_n wherein_o consent_n of_o father_n be_v and_o must_v necessary_o be_v have_v be_v that_o which_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n a_o author_n that_o i_o can_v never_o sufficient_o commend_v have_v excellent_o lay_v down_o in_o his_o 37._o chapter_n contra_fw-la haereses_fw-la his_o word_n be_v these_o antiqua_fw-la patrum_fw-la consentio_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la non_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la divinae_fw-la legis_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la sed_fw-la solùm_fw-la in_o fidei_fw-la regula_fw-la magno_fw-la nobis_fw-la study_v &_o investiganda_fw-la &_o sequenda_fw-la est_fw-la the_o ancient_a consent_n of_o holy_a father_n be_v with_o great_a care_n and_o study_v to_o be_v both_o search_v out_o and_o follow_v of_o we_o not_o in_o all_o their_o questioning_n of_o holy_a writ_n but_o only_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 28._o and_o unto_o this_o s._n augustine_n allude_v where_o he_o write_v thus_o alia_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la interse_n aliquando_fw-la etiam_fw-la doctissimi_fw-la atque_fw-la optimi_fw-la regulae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la defensores_fw-la salua_fw-la fidei_fw-la compage_fw-la non_fw-la consonant_n &_o alius_fw-la alio_fw-la de_fw-la una_fw-la re_fw-la melius_fw-la aliquid_fw-la dicit_fw-la &_o veriùs_fw-la there_o be_v 2._o some_o thing_n wherein_o sometime_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o the_o best_a defender_n of_o the_o catholic_n rule_n do_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o but_o one_o speak_v better_a and_o more_o true_o than_o another_o of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n but_o yet_o without_o breach_n of_o the_o link_n of_o faith_n 29._o but_o forasmuch_o as_o particular_a father_n do_v often_o time_n set_v down_o and_o deliver_v the_o public_a belief_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o any_o private_a opinion_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o speak_v private_o and_o not_o in_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o they_o mention_v this_o or_o that_o point_n concern_v religion_n some_o certain_a rule_n or_o note_n for_o our_o better_a direction_n and_o faith_n distinction_n must_v be_v set_v down_o and_o the_o sure_a rule_n to_o discern_v how_o far_o forth_o private_a father_n opinion_n aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v or_o may_v bind_v a_o man_n in_o conscience_n be_v for_o a_o man_n to_o consider_v upright_o in_o the_o impartial_a judgement_n betwixt_o god_n and_o his_o own_o conscience_n whether_o that_o opinion_n of_o his_o if_o he_o be_v but_o one_o or_o they_o if_o they_o be_v many_o have_v be_v withstand_v or_o gainsay_v contradict_v or_o impugn_a by_o any_o other_o father_n or_o father_n synod_n or_o council_n provincial_a general_n or_o national_n of_o the_o same_o or_o other_o precedent_n or_o subsequent_a age_n for_o if_o this_o can_v be_v make_v good_a against_o any_o one_o particular_a father_n opinion_n then_o may_v it_o more_o than_o probable_o be_v infer_v that_o forsomuch_o as_o this_o particular_a father_n be_v general_o repute_v for_o a_o catholic_a doctor_n in_o his_o time_n never_o reprehend_v tax_v note_v condemn_v for_o this_o opinion_n as_o false_a doubtful_a or_o erroneous_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v i_o say_v necessary_o infer_v and_o conclude_v that_o that_o very_a opinion_n of_o his_o be_v the_o opinion_n judgement_n and_o doctrine_n also_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o age_n and_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v and_o of_o which_o he_o himself_o be_v then_o a_o father_n and_o doctor_n for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o it_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o with_o any_o probability_n imagine_v that_o this_o father_n can_v have_v teach_v this_o opinion_n in_o his_o day_n or_o diwlge_v it_o in_o his_o write_n unto_o posterity_n without_o some_o note_n or_o memory_n of_o controlment_n or_o taxation_n of_o the_o same_o either_o whilst_o he_o live_v or_o after_o his_o death_n 30._o and_o hereby_o it_o follow_v that_o albeit_o this_o doctrine_n shall_v have_v but_o one_o or_o two_o ancient_a father_n that_o do_v express_o mention_v it_o in_o their_o day_n other_o father_n of_o the_o same_o time_n either_o not_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v thereof_o or_o else_o busy_v and_o encumber_v about_o other_o as_o weighty_a point_n yet_o be_v this_o alone_a sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o understand_v that_o in_o their_o day_n that_o mention_v the_o same_o the_o foresaid_a opinion_n of_o that_o father_n or_o father_n be_v hold_v for_o catholic_n doctrine_n &_o throughout_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o that_o otherwise_o without_o all_o doubt_n it_o will_v they_o or_o afterwards_o have_v be_v other_o descry_v &_o censure_v by_o the_o careful_a &_o vigilant_a watchman_n of_o god_n church_n neither_o can_v any_o instance_n as_o i_o imagine_v be_v give_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o that_o from_o the_o very_a first_o infancy_n of_o christianity_n unto_o our_o day_n it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o any_o father_n or_o doctor_n though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o renown_v for_o wit_n and_o learning_n piety_n or_o sanctity_n do_v ever_o begin_v any_o new_a doctrine_n or_o erroneous_a opinion_n different_a from_o the_o catholic_a belief_n but_o that_o present_o the_o same_o be_v except_v against_o by_o other_o and_o this_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a in_o the_o particular_a case_n and_o slip_v of_o tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n lactamius_fw-la and_o other_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o when_o any_o of_o these_o transgress_v the_o ancient_a bound_n innovate_a any_o thing_n from_o the_o receive_v faith_n they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o except_v and_o cry_v out_o against_o note_v &_o tax_v for_o such_o their_o private_a &_o erroneous_a opinion_n as_o dissent_v from_o public_a union_n and_o catholic_n communion_n 31._o neither_o do_v any_o man_n in_o my_o judgement_n explain_v this_o point_n better_o than_o s._n augustine_n himself_o and_o therefore_o as_o i_o serve_v myself_o principal_o of_o he_o in_o the_o precedent_a consideration_n so_o do_v i_o mean_v also_o in_o this_o for_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n when_o many_o father_n do_v agree_v in_o their_o opinion_n against_o one_o or_o few_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o s._n cyprian_n about_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o heretic_n it_o fall_v out_o the_o great_a part_n be_v there_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o less_o as_o the_o say_a father_n do_v often_o affirm_v so_o notwithstanding_o when_o no_o such_o opposition_n and_o contradiction_n be_v of_o the_o mayor_n part_n s._n augustine_n himself_o make_v high_a and_o singular_a account_n of_o every_o private_a father_n opinion_n as_o namely_o when_o he_o extoll_v the_o authority_n o._n s._n 32._o hilarius_n against_o lulian_n save_v ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la acerrimum_fw-la
they_o promise_v silence_n and_o when_o they_o say_v they_o will_v believe_v the_o father_n of_o those_o first_o age_n when_o with_o one_o unanyme_n consent_n they_o shall_v agree_v upon_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o salvation_n which_o seldom_o fall_v out_o in_o matter_n especial_o now_o in_o controversy_n for_o that_o they_o be_v busy_v in_o other_o matter_n as_o before_o have_v be_v touch_v either_o of_o write_v apologye_n during_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n or_o in_o convert_n and_o instruct_v the_o new_a convert_v christian_n or_o in_o confute_v other_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o rare_a case_n to_o find_v all_o the_o father_n agree_v together_o with_o one_o consent_n except_o it_o be_v in_o a_o general_a council_n and_o to_o determine_v that_o this_o or_o that_o point_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n &_o article_n of_o belief_n 39_o neither_o be_v it_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o purpose_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v so_o for_o that_o our_o principal_a scope_n and_o drift_n be_v to_o seek_v and_o trace_v out_o from_o time_n to_o time_n by_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n in_o every_o age_n where_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n go_v and_o whether_o the_o protestant_n or_o our_o church_n at_o this_o day_n have_v more_o resemblance_n unto_o she_o there_o belief_n be_v diverse_a other_o argument_n and_o probable_a conjecture_n to_o seek_v out_o the_o same_o atlea_v wise_a probable_o then_o only_a article_n of_o belief_n agree_v upon_o by_o unanime_fw-la consent_n as_o for_o example_n sundry_a ceremony_n use_v in_o baptism_n and_o other_o sacrament_n as_o exorcism_n exsufflation_n christen_v and_o the_o like_v mention_v by_o s._n augustine_n and_o by_o diverse_a other_o ancient_a father_n as_o also_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cross_n taper_n candle_n reverence_v of_o holy_a relic_n and_o kneel_v before_o picture_n image_n &_o crucifix_n and_o other_o rite_n testify_v by_o the_o whole_a senate_n of_o christian_a antiquity_n which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o by_o the_o say_a father_n commend_v and_o deliver_v as_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n yet_o these_o be_v practise_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o compare_v to_o the_o custom_n of_o protestant_n and_o we_o in_o our_o church_n will_v easy_o disclose_v which_o of_o the_o two_o they_o or_o we_o do_v more_o imitate_v or_o impugn_v the_o true_a church_n of_o antiquity_n but_o content_v ourselves_o at_o this_o time_n with_o the_o only_o mention_v of_o they_o by_o the_o way_n we_o will_v make_v a_o short_a and_o brief_a passage_n or_o rather_o step_v throughout_o the_o foresay_a four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n limit_v unto_o we_o and_o this_o god_n willing_a we_o will_v do_v not_o by_o cite_v but_o lay_v down_o the_o father_n authority_n themselves_o in_o particular_a for_o it_o will_v be_v over_o long_o as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v but_o rather_o by_o produce_v such_o witness_n who_o be_v of_o most_o credit_n with_o our_o adversary_n can_v be_v well_o mistrust_v or_o discredit_v to_o wit_n the_o magdeburgian_o century_n who_o have_v in_o every_o age_n diligent_o though_o partial_o examine_v the_o same_o and_o how_o substantial_a a_o proof_n this_o be_v of_o catholic_n religion_n by_o the_o very_a confession_n &_o concession_n of_o their_o great_a adversary_n i_o appeal_v for_o judgement_n unto_o the_o discreet_a and_o indifferent_a reader_n the_o first_o age._n 40._o and_o as_o for_o the_o first_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n his_o glorious_a incarnation_n which_o be_v depute_v general_o unto_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n age_n as_o the_o chief_a doctor_n and_o father_n that_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o that_o time_n i_o will_v take_v only_o the_o note_n of_o one_o position_n 4._o or_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o say_v magdeburgians_n do_v gather_v out_o of_o all_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n as_o agree_v upon_o against_o the_o protestant_n by_o the_o teacher_n of_o that_o age_n and_o continue_v ever_o after_o throughout_o all_o subsequent_a age_n and_o this_o be_v concern_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n common_o call_v the_o eucharist_n which_o point_n the_o ancient_a father_n against_o all_o heretical_a &_o protestantical_a trope_n and_o figure_n do_v prove_v abundant_o out_o of_o the_o ghospel_n themselves_o out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n out_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o that_o first_o age_n &_o ever_o after_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v evident_o contain_v the_o same_o be_v proper_o and_o literal_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v and_o not_o by_o any_o figure_n or_o trope_n as_o the_o zwinglians_n caluinist_n &_o all_o other_o sect_n of_o sacramentary_n do_v faythles_o imagine_v 41._o this_o first_o prescription_n then_o of_o this_o important_a article_n of_o faith_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v find_v to_o be_v for_o we_o against_o presence_n all_o our_o english_a protestant_n aswell_o in_o the_o very_a first_o age_n under_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o in_o all_o other_o successive_a time_n for_o that_o in_o every_o age_n they_o prove_v this_o diligent_o out_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o that_o age_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n his_o true_a body_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n by_o the_o very_a power_n and_o virtue_n of_o christ_n his_o own_o word_n use_v by_o the_o priest_n in_o consecration_n and_o if_o any_o heretic_n demand_v a_o reason_n of_o this_o admirable_a transmutation_n i_o can_v give_v he_o no_o other_o then_o that_o which_o s._n augustine_n give_v in_o the_o like_o miraculous_a case_n it_o be_v in_o his_o three_o epistle_n ad_fw-la volusianum_fw-la and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o will_v suffice_v any_o right_n believe_v christian_a if_o he_o will_v not_o continue_v a_o heretic_n or_o a_o infidel_n hic_fw-la si_fw-la ratio_fw-la quaeritur_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la mirabile_fw-la si_fw-la exemplum_fw-la poscatur_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la singular_a demus_fw-la deum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la posse_fw-la quod_fw-la nos_fw-la fateamur_fw-la investigari_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la in_fw-la talibus_fw-la enim_fw-la rebus_fw-la tota_fw-la ratio_fw-la sacti_fw-la est_fw-la potentia_fw-la facientis_fw-la here_o if_o a_o reason_n be_v seek_v for_o it_o be_v not_o wonderful_a if_o a_o example_n be_v demand_v it_o be_v not_o singular_a let_v we_o grant_v that_o god_n can_v do_v some_o thing_n which_o we_o must_v confess_v we_o can_v search_v out_o for_o in_o such_o matter_n as_o these_o be_v the_o whole_a reason_n of_o the_o deed_n be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o doer_n and_o be_v not_o this_o one_o substantial_a point_n of_o popery_n as_o our_o protestant_n brand_v it_o prove_v for_o we_o by_o their_o own_o friend_n 42._o but_o as_o for_o other_o point_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o protestant_n though_o the_o magdeburgian_o will_v not_o willing_o grant_v they_o to_o be_v so_o ancient_a as_o the_o first_o age_n which_o we_o notwithstanding_o do_v prove_v abundant_o in_o handle_v of_o every_o controversy_n yet_o do_v they_o will_v they_o will_v they_o grant_v sundry_a of_o they_o to_o have_v begin_v and_o creep_v in_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o second_o age_n and_o so_o continue_v and_o increase_v in_o number_n in_o the_o three_o four_o five_o and_o six_o when_o all_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n go_v clear_a with_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o such_o as_o be_v chief_a doctor_n and_o father_n for_o their_o learning_n and_o piety_n in_o those_o time_n and_o age_n as_o here_o shall_v appear_v by_o a_o just_a view_n of_o that_o which_o here_o brief_o i_o purpose_v to_o set_v down_o the_o second_o age._n 43._o in_o the_o second_o age_n immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v grant_v the_o very_a principal_a father_n of_o etc._n that_o age_n to_o make_v for_o we_o not_o only_o in_o the_o foresay_a article_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n against_o sacramentary_n but_o also_o in_o sundry_a other_o point_n now_o in_o controversy_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o first_o concern_v freewill_n remain_v in_o man_n after_o his_o will_n fall_n for_o proof_n whereof_o they_o cyte_v s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 72._o contra_fw-la harese_n and_o that_o with_o great_a indignation_n and_o reprehension_n say_v that_o he_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o also_o of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o s._n paul_n multa_fw-la prophetarum_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o pauli_n detorquet_fw-la and_o the_o word_n which_o they_o reprehend_v in_o s._n irenaeus_n be_v these_o prophetae_fw-la &_o
apostoli_fw-la hortabantur_fw-la homines_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la agere_fw-la bonum_fw-la quoque_fw-la operari_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la sit_fw-la hoc_fw-la the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v exhort_v man_n to_o do_v justice_n and_o to_o work_v good_a work_n for_o that_o this_o be_v in_o our_o power_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o great_a offence_n in_o s._n irenaeus_n to_o speak_v so_o like_o a_o papist_n 44._o they_o accuse_v also_o other_o father_n of_o the_o same_o age_n for_o like_a fault_n as_o justinus_n martyr_n if_o it_o be_v his_o book_n in_o his_o answer_n unto_o the_o hundred_o and_o three_o question_n ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n lib._n 2._o stromatum_fw-la say_v of_o this_o latter_a clemens_n liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la ubique_fw-la asserit_fw-la clement_n do_v every_o where_o defend_v freewill_n and_o final_o they_o give_v this_o censure_n of_o all_o that_o age_n nullus_fw-la ferè_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la locus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la tam_fw-la citò_fw-la obscurari_fw-la coeperit_fw-la atque_fw-la hic_fw-la de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la there_o be_v no_o piece_n of_o doctrine_n that_o begin_v to_o be_v darken_v so_o soon_o as_o this_o of_o free_a will_n which_o darken_n be_v nothing_o else_o with_o they_o but_o the_o catholic_n sense_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o now_o also_o we_o hold_v to_o wit_n that_o albeit_o man_n his_o freewill_n be_v great_o work_n wound_v by_o adam_n fall_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o so_o extinguish_v but_o that_o nature_n be_v relieve_v by_o the_o holy_a assistance_n of_o christ_n grace_n and_o not_o otherwise_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n may_v cooperate_v in_o do_v of_o good_a work_n which_o be_v also_o these_o holy_a father_n meaning_n 45._o the_o like_o the_o say_v magdeburgian_o do_v complain_v of_o the_o article_n of_o good_a work_n and_o perfection_n of_o life_n to_o wit_n that_o this_o doctrine_n also_o begin_v to_o be_v darken_v in_o this_o age_n so_o as_o according_a unto_o they_o the_o candle_n lighten_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o set_v upon_o the_o golden_a candlestick_n of_o the_o church_n dure_v but_o a_o little_a while_n 46._o furthermore_o they_o cyte_v also_o that_o say_n of_o s._n clement_n lib._n 5._o stromatum_fw-la which_o anger_v they_o very_o much_o gratia_n seruamur_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la absque_fw-la bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n but_o not_o without_o good_a work_n et_fw-fr lib._n 6._o stromatum_fw-la quando_fw-la audierimus_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la te_fw-la saluum_fw-la fecit_fw-la non_fw-la accepimus_fw-la eum_fw-la dicere_fw-la absolutè_fw-la choose_fw-la saluos_fw-la suturos_fw-la qui_fw-la quomodocunque_fw-la crediderint_fw-la nisi_fw-la facta_fw-la quoque_fw-la fuerint_fw-la consecuta_fw-la whensoever_o we_o shall_v hear_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n unto_o the_o cananaean_a thy_o faith_n have_v save_v thou_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v that_o he_o say_v absolute_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v whosoever_o believe_v in_o any_o sort_n except_o good_a deed_n do_v also_o follow_v and_o be_v this_o aught_o else_o but_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n that_o faith_n must_v go_v before_o and_o good_a work_n follow_v and_o be_v not_o this_o the_o self_n same_o doctrine_n which_o s._n paul_n teach_v say_v that_o the_o save_a faith_n be_v fides_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la charitatem_fw-la operatur_fw-la the_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o charity_n in_o us._n 47._o moreover_o concern_v the_o law_n that_o it_o do_v not_o impossible_a command_v impossible_a thing_n but_o that_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o christ_n grace_n christian_n man_n may_v observe_v the_o commandment_n this_o the_o magdeburgian_o do_v censure_n for_o erroneous_a doctrine_n also_o in_o the_o father_n of_o this_o second_o age_n namely_o in_o justinus_n martyr_n resp_n ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la 103._o who_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o example_n of_o s._n paul_n himself_o &_o of_o zachary_n and_o elizabeth_n that_o be_v both_o of_o they_o just_a and_o s._n irenaeus_n teach_v the_o say_a doctrine_n lib._n 4._o c._n 30._o and_o clemens_n lib._n 2._o stromatum_fw-la be_v all_o father_n of_o this_o second_o age_n which_o doctrine_n be_v confirm_v afterward_o by_o all_o the_o father_n of_o subsequent_a age_n and_o yet_o do_v the_o goodfellow_n magdeburgians_n condemn_v the_o same_o with_o great_a resolution_n out_o of_o a_o maxim_n of_o aristotle_n most_o foolish_o and_o wicked_o apply_v say_v dato_n uno_fw-la inconuenienti_fw-la sequi_fw-la solent_fw-la infinita_fw-la one_o inconvenience_n be_v grant_v by_o these_o father_n to_o wit_n the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n infinite_a other_o inconvenience_n be_v wont_a to_o follow_v which_o speech_n of_o the_o father_n though_o it_o be_v incommodious_a unto_o the_o magdeburgian_o &_o for_o such_o set_v down_o by_o they_o yet_o be_v the_o word_n plain_a for_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n now_o hold_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o that_o behalf_n 48._o but_o yet_o further_o concern_v the_o external_a usual_a sacrifice_n of_o christian_n then_o accustom_v to_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o christian_n altar_n the_o same_o magdeburgian_o be_v much_o trouble_v about_o certain_a speech_n of_o s._n ignatius_n and_o s._n irenaeus_n the_o first_o have_v these_o word_n in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la smyrnenses_n non_fw-fr lice_n sine_fw-la episcopo_fw-la neque_fw-la offer_n neque_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la immolare_fw-la it_o be_v not_o lawful_a without_o the_o bishop_n to_o make_v oblation_n or_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o the_o like_a word_n they_o cyte_v out_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n 4._o cap._n 32._o say_v of_o he_o satis_fw-la videtur_fw-la loqui_fw-la incommodè_fw-la cum_fw-la ait_fw-la novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la novam_fw-la docuit_fw-la oblationem_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n accijiens_fw-la in_o universo_fw-la mundo_fw-la offer_v deo_fw-la irenaeus_n say_v they_o seem_v to_o speak_v incommodious_o enough_o when_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v teach_v a_o new_a oblation_n of_o a_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n do_v offer_v unto_o god_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o they_o of_o the_o external_a christian_a sacrifice_n of_o those_o day_n check_v &_o condemn_v the_o father_n of_o that_o first_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n 49._o about_o tradition_n in_o like_a manner_n rite_n and_o cerimonye_n they_o complain_v in_o this_o age_n as_o they_o do_v of_o other_o tradition_n point_n before_o to_o wit_n that_o doctrina_fw-la de_fw-la libertate_fw-la christiana_fw-la nonnihil_a coepit_fw-la obseurari_fw-la that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n begin_v not_o a_o little_a to_o be_v darken_v with_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o this_o age_n also_o &_o succrevit_fw-la say_v they_o paulatim_fw-la error_n de_fw-la traditionibus_fw-la necessariò_fw-la obseruandis_fw-la and_o the_o error_n of_o necessary_a observation_n of_o tradition_n do_v by_o little_a and_o little_o grow_v up_o whereof_o they_o give_v a_o example_n out_o of_o s._n ignatius_n his_o epistle_n add_v philadelphios_n where_o he_o say_v dies_fw-la festos_fw-la nolite_fw-la inhonor_n be_v quadragesimam_fw-la verò_fw-la nolite_fw-la pro_fw-la nihilo_fw-la habere_fw-la imitationem_fw-la enim_fw-la cominet_fw-la dei_fw-la conversationis_fw-la hebdomadam_fw-la etiam_fw-la passionis_fw-la nolite_fw-la despicere_fw-la quarta_fw-la verò_fw-la &_o sexta_fw-la feria_fw-la ieiunate_fw-la reliquias_fw-la pauperibus_fw-la porrigentes_fw-la do_v not_o dishonour_v holy_a day_n do_v not_o neglect_v lend_v for_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o imitation_n of_o christ_n his_o conversation_n who_o be_v our_o god_n do_v not_o despise_v the_o passion_n week_n do_v you_o fast_o upon_o wensdaye_n and_o fry_v day_n &_o that_o which_o be_v leave_v of_o your_o meat_n give_v it_o unto_o the_o poor_a and_o this_o be_v the_o darkness_n which_o the_o magdeburgian_o do_v observe_v or_o rather_o this_o be_v the_o light_n which_o those_o angel_n of_o darkness_n and_o instrument_n of_o satan_n will_v darken_v in_o the_o apostolical_a write_n of_o s._n ignatius_n and_o other_o ancient_n of_o this_o very_o next_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n contrary_a unto_o their_o carnal_a and_o evangelicall_a liberty_n which_o their_o first_o luxurious_a apostata_fw-la and_o cloysterbreaker_n luther_n set_v abroach_o 50._o the_o same_o magdeburgian_o do_v cite_v a_o plain_a sentence_n out_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o whereby_o he_o prove_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o wit_n for_o her_o more_o powerable_a principality_n rome_n it_o be_v of_o necessity_n that_o all_o church_n shall_v come_v unto_o she_o that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o faithful_a people_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o that_o in_o she_o have_v be_v conserve_v ever_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o plain_a sentence_n the_o magdeburgian_o do_v endeavour_v to_o delude_v by_o diverse_a shift_n as_o first_o that_o it_o seem_v to_o savour_n of_o novelty_n then_o that_o this_o sentence_n be_v find_v say_v they_o in_o the_o copy_n that_o now_o be_v extant_a of_o irenaeus_n as_o though_o there_o be_v other_o not_o extant_a that_o have_v it_o not_o three_o
they_o do_v interpret_v irenaeus_n his_o meaning_n that_o he_o understand_v only_o by_o tradition_n write_v doctrine_n but_o by_o this_o we_o may_v see_v how_o they_o be_v encumber_v with_o the_o write_n of_o father_n even_o in_o this_o very_o first_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n when_o these_o and_o all_o other_o the_o like_a doctrine_n of_o christian_n catholic_n religion_n be_v seal_v with_o the_o fast_o shed_v blood_n of_o her_o martyr_n and_o doctor_n 51._o another_o point_n also_o offend_v they_o much_o which_o be_v the_o excellency_n and_o great_a merit_n of_o martyrdom_n which_o martyrdom_n the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v in_o all_o their_o write_n exalt_v de_fw-fr martyrio_fw-la say_v they_o nimis_fw-la honorificè_fw-la sentire_fw-la coeperunt_fw-la the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n begin_v to_o think_v too_o glorious_o of_o martyrdom_n belike_o these_o same_o good_a fellow_n never_o mean_v that_o their_o finger_n shall_v ache_v for_o christ_n or_o christian_a religion_n and_o then_o they_o say_v of_o holy_a s._n ignatius_n that_o constant_a martyr_n ignatius_n in_o epistolis_fw-la valde_fw-la periculosè_fw-la loquor_fw-la de_fw-la martyrij_fw-la merito_fw-la ignatius_n in_o many_o of_o his_o epistle_n do_v speak_v very_o dangerous_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o martyrdom_n also_o they_o do_v check_v the_o same_o saint_n and_o holy_a martyr_n for_o that_o in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o the_o roman_n when_o he_o be_v go_v unto_o martyrdom_n &_o to_o be_v devour_v of_o wild_a beast_n in_o the_o amphitheatre_n of_o rome_n he_o cry_v out_o sinite_fw-la i_o ut_fw-la bestiarum_fw-la esca_fw-la sim_fw-la per_fw-la quam_fw-la possim_fw-la christum_fw-la promereri_fw-la suffer_v i_o that_o i_o may_v be_v the_o food_n of_o beast_n and_o thereby_o promerit_v to_o enjoy_v god_n himself_o and_o what_o so_o great_a peril_n be_v there_o i_o pray_v you_o in_o this_o doctrine_n for_o that_o throughout_o the_o whole_a fpistle_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o ascribe_v unto_o christ_n his_o grace_n all_o the_o fortitude_n which_o he_o expect_v for_o this_o combat_n and_o consequent_o all_o his_o merit_n of_o enjoy_v god_n proceed_v principal_o from_o the_o say_a grace_n of_o his_o master_n and_o so_o do_v the_o catholic_n at_o this_o day_n hold_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n if_o malice_n and_o envy_n can_v suffer_v the_o protestant_n to_o see_v it_o and_o acknowledge_v it_o 52._o but_o they_o be_v very_o angry_a with_o he_o for_o frequent_v use_v of_o another_o phrase_n in_o three_o distinct_a epistle_n to_o wit_n saint_n to_o those_o of_o antioch_n of_o ephesus_n and_o to_o policarpe_n pro_fw-la animabus_fw-la vestris_fw-la ego_fw-la afficiar_fw-la quando_fw-la christum_fw-la meruero_fw-la adipisci_fw-la i_o shall_v be_v come_v a_o intercessor_n for_o your_o soul_n when_o i_o shall_v deserve_v to_o obtain_v the_o fruition_n of_o christ._n in_o which_o word_n as_o you_o see_v be_v not_o only_o express_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o singular_a merit_n of_o martyrdom_n but_o also_o insinuate_v the_o intercession_n of_o martyr_n depart_v unto_o the_o next_o life_n for_o their_o friend_n leave_v behind_o they_o upon_o earth_n as_o have_v not_o aspire_v unto_o the_o heavenly_a bliss_n 53._o and_o final_o not_o to_o go_v any_o further_a they_o quarrel_n also_o with_o the_o say_v ignatius_n about_o the_o merit_n and_o praise_n of_o virginity_n virginity_n as_o diverse_a heretical_a caluinist_n have_v late_o do_v in_o oxford_n ex_fw-la ignatij_fw-la epistolis_fw-la apparet_fw-la say_v they_o homines_fw-la iam_fw-la tum_fw-la paulò_fw-la impensiùs_fw-la coepisse_fw-la amare_fw-la &_o venerari_fw-la virginitatis_fw-la statum_fw-la it_o appear_v out_o of_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n that_o even_o then_o man_n begin_v more_o earnest_o to_o love_n and_o reverence_v the_o state_n of_o virginity_n wherefore_o they_o give_v sundry_a example_n as_o namely_o in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la antichenos_n virgin_n videant_fw-la cui_fw-la se_fw-la consecrarint_fw-la let_v virgin_n consider_v unto_o who_o they_o have_v consecrate_v themseleve_v and_o in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la tharsenses_n eas_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o virginitate_fw-la sunt_fw-la honorate_v sicut_fw-la sacras_fw-la christi_fw-la honour_n those_o that_o live_v in_o virginity_n as_o the_o sacred_a of_o christ._n so_o excellent_a a_o opinion_n have_v this_o holy_a father_n &_o martyr_n in_o those_o first_o day_n of_o thè_z primitive_a church_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o virginity_n so_o little_o esteem_v now_o by_o protestant_n 54._o all_o these_o point_n of_o controversy_n then_o betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n to_o wit_n of_o freewill_n good_a work_n possibility_n of_o the_o commandment_n external_a christian_a sacrifice_n tradition_n and_o rite_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n merit_n of_o martyrdom_n and_o state_n of_o virginity_n to_o pretermit_v sundry_a other_o article_n as_o overlong_o to_o be_v handle_v here_o we_o see_v to_o have_v be_v avouch_v by_o the_o principal_a father_n of_o the_o second_o age_n and_o that_o in_o our_o defence_n against_o the_o protestant_n 55._o and_o howsoever_o the_o magdeburgian_o go_v about_o to_o discredit_v these_o doctrine_n together_o with_o their_o author_n call_v age_n they_o incommodas_fw-la opiniones_fw-la naevos_fw-la stipulas_fw-la &_o errores_fw-la patrum_fw-la incommodious_a opinion_n blot_n stubble_n and_o error_n in_o the_o father_n yet_o seem_v this_o only_a reason_n and_o consideration_n to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v they_o of_o heretical_a insolency_n in_o their_o condemn_v these_o father_n for_o that_o it_o can_v be_v show_v and_o if_o it_o can_v let_v the_o protestant_n speak_v that_o the_o say_v father_n be_v ever_o tax_v or_o condemn_v for_o these_o doctrine_n by_o the_o church_n or_o other_o doctor_n of_o that_o age_n or_o of_o any_o age_n afterward_o for_o the_o space_n of_o fourteen_o or_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n together_o until_o luther_n profane_a and_o unclean_a spirit_n break_v forth_o of_o the_o cloister_n and_o make_v way_n for_o heretical_a insolency_n to_o bark_v against_o orthodoxal_a antiquity_n and_o this_o shall_v suffice_v for_o this_o second_o age_n let_v we_o now_o pass_v to_o see_v how_o conform_a and_o agreeable_a the_o three_o age_n be_v unto_o the_o second_o for_o by_o this_o lineal_a and_o personal_a descent_n of_o doctor_n and_o century_n we_o shall_v evident_o and_o infallible_o discover_v how_o in_o all_o time_n age_n and_o person_n the_o business_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v still_o carry_v by_o tradition_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n the_o three_o age._n 56._o concern_v this_o three_o age_n wherein_o be_v doctor_n tertullian_n origen_n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n cyprianus_n methodius_n and_o many_o other_o which_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o be_o enforce_v to_o pretermit_v the_o magdeburgian_o do_v begin_v with_o this_o preface_n both_o complain_v and_o tax_v quò_fw-la longiùs_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la aetate_fw-la recessum_fw-la est_fw-la eòplus_fw-la stipularum_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la puritate_fw-la accessit_fw-la the_o further_a of_o that_o we_o go_v from_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o more_o chaff_n do_v grow_v into_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o you_o see_v we_o have_v go_v but_o one_o age_n from_o thence_o for_o the_o last_o be_v the_o first_o after_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o be_v the_o second_o and_o in_o the_o last_o you_o have_v hear_v what_o chaff_n they_o complain_v of_o but_o now_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o they_o complain_v not_o only_o of_o the_o same_o point_n of_o chaff_n reiterated_a and_o confirm_v again_o by_o the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n to_o wit_n about_o free_a will_n and_o good_a work_n perfection_n of_o life_n possibility_n of_o commandment_n sacrifice_n tradition_n rite_n angel_n supremacy_n merit_n of_o martyrdom_n and_o virginity_n for_o all_o these_o head_n they_o do_v show_v in_o their_o several_a title_n of_o doctrine_n to_o have_v be_v continue_v repeat_v and_o confirm_v again_o by_o the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n but_o furthermore_o they_o do_v also_o show_v and_o complain_v of_o other_o article_n explayn_v by_o the_o father_n of_o this_o three_o age_n in_o behoof_n of_o the_o modern_a catholic_a religion_n much_o more_o abundant_o than_o before_o as_o for_o example_n they_o show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o opinion_n of_o this_o deinceps_fw-la age_n angelosinuocandos_fw-mi esse_fw-la that_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v unto_o according_a unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o origen_n who_o set_v down_o also_o a_o certain_a form_n of_o pray_v and_o invocate_a upon_o angel_n to_o wit_n veni_fw-la angelo_n suscipe_fw-la sermone_fw-la conver_n sum_fw-la ab_fw-la errore_fw-la pristino_fw-la etc._n etc._n come_v angel_n and_o receive_v he_o that_o be_v convert_v ezechielen_n from_o his_o error_n by_o the_o word_n preach_v neither_o be_v this_o ever_o reprehend_v in_o origen_n or_o number_v among_o his_o error_n and_o consequent_o this_o may_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v be_v the_o form_n of_o pray_v in_o the_o public_a church_n at_o that_o day_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n before_o
say_v lactantius_n s._n gregory_n nyssen_n hilarius_n nazianzen_n s._n ambrose_n theophilus_n alexandrinus_n ephraim_n and_o other_o all_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v open_o defend_v the_o same_o whereupon_o they_o i_o mean_v the_o magdeburgian_o conclude_v in_o these_o word_n i_o be_o cogitet_fw-la pius_fw-la 293._o lector_fw-la quam_fw-la procul_fw-la haec_fw-la aetas_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la articulo_fw-la à_fw-la doctrina_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la desciverit_fw-la now_o let_v the_o godly_a reader_n consider_v how_o far_o this_o age_n depart_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o article_n of_o good_a work_n but_o i_o will_v think_v it_o more_o reason_n to_o exhort_v yea_o and_o to_o beseech_v the_o reader_n even_o as_o he_o have_v care_n of_o the_o everlasting_a welfare_n and_o salvation_n of_o his_o soul_n to_o consider_v serious_o &_o indifferent_o set_v all_o kind_n of_o prejudice_n apart_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o likely_a that_o so_o many_o learned_a and_o holy_a father_n that_o live_v with_o so_o great_a admiration_n of_o their_o virtue_n learning_n piety_n in_o this_o age_n shall_v know_v what_o agree_v with_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o what_o agree_v not_o aswell_o or_o as_o a_o man_n will_v imagine_v somewhat_o better_a than_o these_o four_o quarrel_a companion_n the_o magdeburgian_o i_o mean_v illyricus_n wigandus_n judex_n and_o faber_n for_o these_o four_o do_v only_o subscribe_v their_o dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o queen_n elizabeth_n upon_o the_o year_n 1560._o 73._o s._n bernard_n rule_n &_o prescription_n of_o antiquity_n be_v this_o quantò_fw-la viciniores_fw-la adventui_fw-la saluatoris_fw-la tantò_fw-la mysterium_fw-la salutis_fw-la pleniùt_fw-la perceperunt_fw-la the_o near_a the_o holy_a father_n be_v unto_o christ_n his_o incarnation_n the_o more_o full_o receive_v and_o perceive_v they_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o yet_o these_o four_o good_a fellow_n do_v thus_o presume_v to_o censure_v the_o most_o reverend_a and_o learned_a ancient_a father_n as_o you_o see_v 74._o and_o on_o this_o fashion_n these_o man_n go_v forwards_o in_o set_v down_o all_o the_o 18._o or_o 19_o head_n of_o doctrine_n before_o mention_v as_o hold_v by_o the_o father_n of_o this_o four_o age_n to_o wit_n pennance_n satisfaction_n invocation_n of_o saint_n cite_v above_o a_o dozen_o father_n of_o this_o age_n for_o the_o same_o of_o tradition_n about_o virginity_n monastical_a life_n &_o the_o like_a wherein_o they_o do_v so_o check_v condenne_n &_o contemn_v the_o say_v holy_a father_n as_o pass_v all_o modesty_n &_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o token_n of_o manifest_a heresy_n 75._o s._n ambrose_n say_v they_o in_o his_o second_o book_n ad_fw-la marcellinam_fw-la nimis_fw-la insolent_a pronunciat_fw-la de_fw-fr virginum_fw-la meritis_fw-la ambrose_n do_v pronounce_v to_o insolent_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o virginity_n the_o like_a and_o worse_o they_o speak_v of_o s._n ephraim_n and_o s._n athanasius_n 301._o for_o that_o they_o write_v of_o monk_n and_o namely_o s._n ephraim_n that_o they_o be_v perfecti_fw-la pugnatores_fw-la paradisi_fw-la amoenitatem_fw-la ante_fw-la oculos_fw-la habentes_fw-la perfect_a fighter_n that_o have_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o sweetness_n of_o paradise_n these_o man_n cry_v out_o against_o this_o quid_fw-la potest_fw-la monstrosiùs_fw-la dici_fw-la contra_fw-la meritum_fw-la christi_fw-la what_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o monstrous_o against_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n 76._o and_o for_o that_o s._n ambrose_n serm_n 6._o de_fw-fr margarita_n have_v these_o word_n whosoever_o therefore_o do_v honour_n martyr_n do_v honour_n christ_n and_o he_o that_o contemn_v saint_n contemn_v the_o lord_n of_o saint_n which_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o gospel_n the_o magdeburgian_o complain_v cry_v out_o i_o be_o cogitet_fw-la pius_fw-la lector_n quànt_fw-la tetra_fw-la suntista_fw-la let_v the_o godly_a reader_n consider_v how_o horrible_a these_o thing_n be_v the_o godly_a reader_n have_v consider_v and_o he_o find_v nothing_o deliver_v by_o these_o father_n but_o the_o holy_a catholic_a doctrine_n and_o as_o for_o your_o exclamation_n they_o be_v but_o the_o barkinge_n of_o vigilantius_n or_o rather_o as_o s._n hierome_n more_o fit_o call_v he_o dormitantius_n and_o other_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n against_o the_o holy_a relic_n of_o saint_n and_o martyr_n reviue_v and_o renew_v by_o you_o again_o rake_v out_o of_o the_o ash_n of_o hell_n and_o hellish_a heresy_n 77._o and_o final_o not_o to_o be_v tedious_a in_o go_v forward_o with_o a_o copious_a enumeration_n of_o the_o foresay_a article_n i_o do_v only_o admonish_v the_o reader_n for_o the_o last_o article_n mention_v of_o purgatory_n how_o they_o do_v produce_v three_o father_n more_o of_o this_o age_n that_o hold_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n lactantius_n prudentius_n and_o s._n hierome_n as_o they_o may_v have_v do_v many_o more_o and_o they_o add_v unto_o the_o say_a former_a number_n diverse_a other_o article_n which_o the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v teach_v as_o of_o the_o particular_a rule_n of_o religious_a people_n now_o in_o use_n de_fw-fr memorijs_fw-la martyrum_fw-la of_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n in_o church_n and_o altar_n erect_v and_o set_v up_o in_o their_o honour_n de_fw-fr signo_fw-la crucis_fw-la of_o the_o external_a use_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o miracle_n that_o thereby_o have_v happen_v whereof_o prudentius_n hymno_fw-la ante_fw-la somnum_fw-la write_v thus_o in_o commendation_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o benefit_n that_o redound_v by_o use_v this_o laudable_a christian_a ceremony_n crux_fw-la pellit_fw-la omne_fw-la crimen_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n keep_v of_o all_o sin_n from_o us._n and_o s._n ephraim_n lib._n de_fw-la poenit_fw-la cap._n 3._o advife_v we_o thus_o pingamus_fw-la in_o ianuis_fw-la ac_fw-la in_o frontibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v we_o paint_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o our_o gate_n in_o our_o forehead_n in_o our_o mouth_n in_o our_o breast_n etc._n etc._n and_o many_o other_o such_o say_n of_o holy_a father_n of_o this_o age_n 78._o wherefore_o to_o conclude_v we_o see_v that_o this_o four_o age_n agree_v with_o the_o former_a three_o in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n hold_v for_o catholic_a throughout_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n at_o this_o day_n and_o as_o the_o father_n of_o this_o age_n do_v consent_n with_o their_o predecessor_n so_o shall_v we_o see_v they_o not_o dissent_v from_o their_o successor_n as_o shall_v appear_v by_o the_o next_o ensue_a age_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a demonstration_n of_o the_o true_a roman_a catholic_n church_n and_o of_o her_o doctrine_n confirm_v by_o all_o record_n of_o antiquity_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adverfary_n the_o magdeburgian_o then_o let_v the_o english_fw-fr protestant_n answer_n unto_o this_o evidence_n and_o give_v a_o better_a if_o they_o can_v but_o we_o shall_v pass_v further_o yet_o to_o make_v a_o insight_n into_o two_o other_o age_n that_o ensue_v the_o five_o and_o six_o age_n 79._o there_o follow_v the_o five_o and_o six_o age_n whereof_o the_o former_a be_v receive_v here_o by_o his_o majesty_n in_o the_o second_o edition_n of_o his_o english_a premonition_n though_o in_o the_o first_o the_o first_o 400._o year_n be_v only_o allow_v as_o have_v be_v say_v and_o the_o late_a be_v comprehend_v in_o m._n jewel_n his_o challenge_n at_o s._n paul_n cross_n who_o promise_v there_o open_o to_o allow_v any_o of_o the_o father_n or_o counsel_n that_o can_v be_v bring_v within_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n but_o this_o public_a declamation_n be_v but_o a_o vain_a ostentation_n of_o the_o challenger_n and_o this_o large_a offer_n be_v also_o restrain_v and_o revoke_v afterwards_o by_o other_o both_o at_o paul_n cross_n and_o in_o either_o of_o the_o university_n in_o so_o much_o that_o doctor_n humphrey_n in_o oxford_z in_o a_o funeral_n speech_n make_v of_o the_o say_v m._n jewel_n by_o the_o former_a d._n humphrey_n do_v not_o for_o bear_v to_o tax_v he_o open_o of_o inconsideration_n for_o his_o so_o large_a and_o liberal_a offer_n of_o father_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n 10._o but_o here_o in_o this_o our_o affair_n and_o business_n we_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o join_v both_o these_o age_n together_o for_o that_o in_o they_o both_o the_o like_a descent_n of_o doctrine_n one_o after_o the_o other_o be_v still_o to_o be_v find_v the_o latter_a repeat_n and_o confirm_v the_o former_a and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o point_n i_o shall_v need_v to_o go_v no_o further_o then_o to_o the_o confession_n and_o concession_n of_o our_o etc._n adversary_n themselves_o the_o magdeburgian_o for_o there_o they_o show_v for_o example_n in_o the_o first_o century_n first_o of_o freewill_n to_o wit_n that_o albeit_o the_o doctor_n of_o this_o age_n interdum_fw-la benè_fw-la &_o sanè_fw-la videantur_fw-la loqui_fw-la tandem_fw-la
of_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o his_o say_a majesty_n most_o royal_o offer_v to_o follow_v for_o open_v the_o window_n unto_o which_o light_n i_o have_v think_v it_o my_o bind_a duty_n both_o before_o god_n and_o man_n to_o take_v this_o small_a labour_n and_o to_o lay_v these_o few_o head_n of_o consideration_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o highness_n most_o wise_a judgement_n and_o understanding_n the_o six_o chapter_n contain_v a_o brief_a contemplation_n of_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v with_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a to_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n and_o now_o have_v handle_v these_o point_n at_o some_o more_o length_n then_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o have_v purpose_v i_o hope_v the_o benignity_n and_o clemency_n of_o his_o majesty_n will_v take_v in_o good_a part_n that_o leave_v the_o reader_n i_o do_v return_n unto_o he_o again_o as_o unto_o my_o most_o dear_o belove_v reverence_v and_o dread_a sovereign_n to_o lay_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o prudent_a consideration_n the_o sum_n of_o that_o which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v consider_v of_o 2._o first_o then_o the_o point_n of_o be_v a_o true_a catholic_a according_a unto_o the_o name_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n be_v of_o such_o importance_n necessity_n and_o consequence_n as_o have_v be_v show_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n that_o no_o riches_n in_o this_o world_n no_o wealth_n no_o treasure_n no_o state_n no_o power_n no_o policy_n no_o human_a felicity_n may_v be_v compare_v with_o it_o as_o right_o s._n augustine_n do_v intimate_v and_o for_o that_o your_o majesty_n eternal_a weal_n after_o the_o brief_a and_o transitory_a passage_n of_o this_o life_n depend_v thereof_o i_o can_v but_o most_o humble_o most_o hearty_o and_o most_o dutiful_o fall_v prostrate_a at_o your_o foot_n beseech_v you_o to_o give_v some_o serious_a attendance_n and_o catholic_a attention_n to_o this_o high_a and_o main_n point_n of_o everlasting_a salvation_n to_o seek_v out_o what_o be_v true_o catholic_a both_o in_o the_o church_n for_o who_o epitheton_fw-la the_o name_n be_v first_o by_o the_o apostle_n invent_v as_o also_o in_o particular_a man_n who_o be_v a_o true_a catholic_a and_o who_o follow_v the_o rule_n which_o the_o name_n describe_v to_o wit_n he_o that_o in_o christian_a religion_n follow_v universality_n and_o not_o singularity_n the_o whole_a and_o not_o a_o part_n ancienty_n and_o novelty_n that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o conserve_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o not_o invent_v frame_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o late_a time_n 3._o and_o for_o that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n heresy_n be_v the_o opposite_a and_o contradictory_n unto_o catholic_a religion_n for_o that_o it_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o part_n to_o itself_o and_o thereby_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v the_o high_a sin_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o almighty_a god_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v commit_v upon_o earth_n for_o that_o it_o overthrow_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o faith_n under_o pretence_n to_o establish_v heresy_n and_o reform_v faith_n my_o desire_n be_v so_o ardent_a in_o this_o point_n that_o your_o majesty_n shall_v enter_v into_o due_a consideration_n thereof_o as_o almighty_a god_n bear_v wirnesse_n unto_o my_o soul_n and_o spirit_n that_o nothing_o in_o this_o life_n stand_v more_o near_o my_o hart_n consider_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o next_o world_n the_o immutable_a weal_n or_o woe_n thereof_o the_o vae_fw-la or_o euge_a that_o each_o man_n be_v to_o receive_v as_o well_o prince_n as_o other_o and_o that_o these_o earthly_a princedom_n will_v seem_v but_o shadow_n at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o worthy_a one_o hour_n of_o that_o glory_n or_o misery_n that_o be_v to_o be_v get_v or_o lose_v by_o catholic_n religion_n or_o heresy_n in_o this_o life_n and_o this_o be_v my_o first_o contemplation_n and_o i_o shall_v pray_v almighty_a god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v also_o your_o majesty_n 4._o the_o second_o be_v about_o those_o four_o way_n propose_v by_o your_o majesty_n for_o aver_n catholicisme_n and_o clear_v from_o heresy_n which_o be_v the_o admit_v and_o believe_v of_o all_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o approve_v the_o four_o first_o counsel_n and_o the_o acceptance_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n in_o all_o which_o if_o with_o the_o admit_v in_o word_n there_o be_v also_o a_o propose_v true_a catholic_a sense_n no_o doubt_n but_o they_o do_v make_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o do_v condemn_v heresy_n but_o the_o importance_n of_o all_o stand_v in_o the_o exposition_n for_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o i_o think_v best_a myself_o or_o to_o acknowledge_v they_o for_o canonical_a or_o not_o canonical_a as_o i_o or_o some_o few_o with_o i_o of_o late_a time_n shall_v please_v to_o prescribe_v or_o to_o admit_v the_o three_o creed_n with_o that_o exposition_n of_o the_o article_n as_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v best_o allow_v or_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n in_o some_o thing_n and_o not_o in_o other_o or_o the_o first_o four_o hundred_o year_n of_o father_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o in_o my_o censure_n do_v agree_v with_o scripture_n be_v to_o reduce_v all_o to_o my_o own_o judgement_n a_o thing_n most_o opposite_a to_o catholicisme_n and_o proper_a to_o heresy_n as_o we_o have_v at_o large_a declare_v 5._o wherefore_o upon_o my_o knee_n i_o do_v most_o humble_o supplicate_v your_o majesty_n to_o consider_v well_o of_o this_o and_o especial_o of_o the_o last_o point_n concern_v the_o ancient_a father_n which_o do_v in_o effect_n contain_v all_o the_o rest_n for_o that_o these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o scripture_n together_o with_o the_o true_a understanding_n thereof_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o first_o as_o from_o the_o apostle_n the_o other_o as_o from_o the_o church_n the_o three_o as_o from_o a_o private_a man_n but_o yet_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n these_o man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n wherein_o diverse_a of_o themselves_o sit_v as_o judge_n and_o bishop_n and_o have_v voyee_n and_o suffrage_n in_o the_o same_o these_o man_n be_v they_o that_o examine_v the_o controversy_n determine_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n condemn_a heresy_n a_o athematize_v heretic_n and_o clear_v the_o coast_n of_o all_o these_o wicked_a and_o turbulent_a encumbrance_n which_o seditious_a and_o headstrong_a spirit_n have_v raise_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n by_o their_o contention_n 6._o and_o final_o these_o be_v they_o who_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v use_v as_o sanne_n to_o winnow_v his_o corn_n &_o to_o purge_v the_o flore_fw-la of_o his_o church_n separate_v the_o chaff_n from_o the_o wheat_n and_o eroneous_a doctrine_n from_o the_o truth_n wherein_o they_o be_v so_o zealous_a and_o diligent_a labourer_n as_o not_o the_o least_o weed_n can_v spring_v up_o in_o this_o field_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o these_o careful_a good_a watchman_n and_o faithful_a gardener_n do_v present_o note_v and_o pursue_v the_o same_o until_o it_o be_v either_o root_v out_o or_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n and_o thereby_o as_o branch_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o vine_n suffer_v to_o wither_v away_o and_o to_o consume_v of_o themselves_o for_o proof_n father_n whereof_o we_o may_v allege_v as_o many_o example_n as_o there_o have_v be_v different_a heresy_n and_o heretic_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n which_o albeit_o they_o ruffle_v much_o &_o mighty_o for_o the_o time_n and_o have_v often_o great_a prince_n king_n emperor_n and_o potentate_n to_o favour_n and_o patronize_v they_o as_o the_o protestant_n have_v now_o your_o majesty_n yet_o be_v they_o so_o consume_v in_o time_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o very_a name_n of_o many_o of_o they_o be_v now_o scarce_o remember_v and_o much_o less_o their_o argument_n reason_n proof_n and_o scripture_n which_o they_o bring_v for_o the_o same_o and_o be_v it_o not_o that_o in_o these_o father_n book_n who_o be_v their_o enemy_n some_o mention_n be_v make_v thereof_o we_o shall_v scarce_o know_v that_o there_o have_v be_v such_o man_n in_o the_o world_n 7._o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o church_n that_o condemn_v these_o man_n and_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n live_v therein_o remain_v ever_o both_o then_o and_o after_o victorious_a and_o shall_v do_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o still_o by_o succession_n and_o continuation_n the_o same_o church_n have_v come_v down_o from_o age_n to_o age_n &_o one_o age_n give_v testimony_n to_o another_o of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o say_a church_n